_The_
  COMING

  BY
  J. C. SNAITH
  AUTHOR OF “THE SAILOR,” “ANNE FEVERSHAM,” ETC.

  D. APPLETON AND COMPANY
  NEW YORK           1917




  COPYRIGHT, 1917, BY
  D. APPLETON AND COMPANY


  Printed in the United States of America




THE COMING




I

He came to his own and his own knew him not.


THE vicar of the parish sat at his study table pen in hand, a sheet of
paper before him. It was Saturday morning already and his weekly sermon
was not yet begun. On Sundays, at the forenoon service, it was Mr.
Perry-Hennington’s custom to read an old discourse, but in the evening
the rigid practice of nearly forty years required that he should give
to the world a new and original homily.

To a man of the vicar’s mold this was a fairly simple matter. His
rustic flock was not in the least critical. To the villagers of
Penfold, a hamlet on the borders of Sussex and Kent, every word of
their pastor was gospel. And in their pastor’s own gravely deliberate
words it was the gospel of Christ Crucified.

There had been a time in the vicar’s life when his task had sat lightly
upon him. Given the family living of Penfold-with-Churley in October,
1879, the Reverend the Honorable Thomas Perry-Hennington had never
really had any trouble in the matter until August, 1914. And then,
all at once, trouble came so heavily upon a man no longer young, that
from about the time of the retreat from Mons Saturday morning became a
symbol of torment. It was then that a dark specter first appeared in
the vicar’s mind. For thirty-five years he had been modestly content
with a simple moral obligation in return for a stipend of eight hundred
pounds a year. He had never presumed to question the fitness of a
man with an Oxford pass degree for such a relatively humble office.
A Christian of the old sort, with the habit of faith, and in his own
phrase “without intellectual smear,” he had always been on terms with
God. And though Mr. Perry-Hennington would have been the last to claim
Him as a tribal deity, in the vicar’s ear He undoubtedly spoke with
the accent of an English public school, and used the language of Dr.
Pusey and Dr. Westcott. But somehow August, 1914, had seemed to change
everything.

It was now June of the following year and Saturday morning had grown
into a nightmare for the vicar. Doubt had arisen in the household of
faith, a cloud no bigger than a man’s hand, but only a firm will and a
stout heart had been able to dispel it. Terrible wrong had been done to
an easy and pleasant world and God had seemed to look on. Moreover it
had been boldly claimed that not only was he a graduate of a foreign
university, but that he had justified the ways of Antichrist.

After grave and bitter searchings of heart, Mr. Perry-Hennington had
risen, not only in the pulpit but in the public press, to rebut the
charge. But this morning, seated in a charming room, biting the end of
a pen, a humbler, more personal doubt in his mind. Was it a man’s work
to be devoting one’s energies to the duties of a parish priest? Was it
a man’s work to be addressing a few yokels, for the most part women and
old men? As far as Penfold-with-Churley was concerned Armageddon might
have been ages away. In fact Mr. Perry-Hennington had recently written
a letter to his favorite newspaper in very good English to say so.

For the tenth time that morning the vicar dipped his pen in the ink.
For the tenth time it hung lifeless, a thing without words, above a
page thirsting to receive them. For the tenth time the ink grew dry.
With a faint sigh, which in one less strong of will would have been
despair, he suddenly lifted his eyes to look through the window.

The room faced south. Sussex was spread before him like a carpet. Fold
upon fold, hill beyond hill, it flowed in curves of inconceivable
harmony to meet the distant sea. To the right a subtle thickening of
sunlight marked the ancient forest of Ashdown; straight ahead was
Crowborough Beacon; far away to the left were dark masses of gorse,
masking the delicate verdure of the weald of Kent. There was not a
cloud in the sky. The sun of June, a generous, living warmth, was
everywhere. But as the vicar gazed solemnly out of the window he had
not a thought for the enchantment of the scene.

Suddenly he rose a little impatiently and opened the window still
wider. If he was to do his duty on the morrow he must have more light,
more air. A grizzled head was flung forth to meet the strong, keen
sun, to snuff the magic air. A clean wind racing by made his lips and
eyelids tingle, and then, all at once, he remembered his boy on the
_Poseidon_.

But he must put the _Poseidon_ out of his mind if he was to do his
pastoral duty on the morrow. Before he could draw in his head and
buckle to his task, an odd whirr of sound, curiously sharp and loud,
came on his ear. There was an airplane somewhere. Involuntarily he
shaded his eyes to look. Yes, there she was! What speed, what grace,
what incomparable power in the live, sentient thing! How feat she
looked, how noble, as she rode the blue like some fabled roc of an
eastern story.

“Off to France,” said the vicar. He took off his spectacles and wiped
them, and then put them on again.

But the morrow’s sermon was again forgotten. He had remembered his
boy in the air. The graceless lad whom he had flogged more than once
in that very room, who had done little good at Marlborough, who had
preferred a stool in a stockbroker’s office to the University, was now
a superman, a veritable god in a machine. A week ago he had been to
Buckingham Palace to be decorated by the King for an act of incredible
daring. His name was great in the hearts of his countrymen. This lad
not yet twenty, whom wild horses would not have dragged through the
fourth Æneid, had made the name of Perry-Hennington ring throughout the
empire.

From this amazing Charley in his biplane, it was only a step in the
father’s mind to honest Dick and the wardroom of the _Poseidon_. The
vicar recalled with a little thrill of pride how Dick’s grandfather,
the admiral, had always said that the boy was “a thorough Hennington,”
the highest compliment the stout old sea dog had it in his power to pay
him or any other human being. And then from Dick with his wide blue
eyes, his square, fighting face and his nerves of steel the thoughts
of the father flew to Tom, his eldest boy, the high-strung, nervous
fellow, the Trinity prize man with the first-class brain. Tom had left
not only a lucrative practice and brilliant prospects at the Bar, but
also a delicate wife and three young children in order to spend the
winter in the trenches of the Ypres salient. Moreover, he had “stuck
it” without a murmur of complaint, although he was far too exact a
thinker ever to have had any illusions in regard to the nature of
war, and although this particular war defied the human imagination to
conceive its horror.

Yes, after all, Tom was the most wonderful of the three. Nature had
not meant him for a soldier, the hypersensitive, overstrung lad who
would faint over a cut finger, who had loathed cricket and football, or
anything violent, who in years of manhood had had an almost fanatical
distrust of the military mind. Some special grace had helped him to
endure the bestiality of Flanders.

From the thought of the three splendid sons God had given him the mind
of the vicar turned to their begetter. He was only just sixty, he
enjoyed rude health except for a touch of rheumatism now and again,
yet here he was in a Sussex village supervising parish matters and
preaching to women and old men.

At last, with a jerk of impatience that was half despair, he suddenly
withdrew his head from the intoxicating sun, the cool, scented wind of
early June. “I’ll see the Bishop, that’s what I’ll do,” he muttered as
he did so.

But as he sat down once more at his writing table before the accusing
page, he remembered that he had seen the Bishop several times already.
And the Bishop’s counsel had been ever the same. Let him do the duty
next him. His place was with his flock. Let him labor in his vocation,
the only work for which one of his sort was really qualified.

Bitterly this soldier of God regretted now that he had not chosen
in his youth the other branch of his profession. Man of sixty as he
was, there were times when he burned to be with his three boys in the
fight. His own father, a fine old Crimean warrior, had once given him
the choice of Sandhurst or Oxford, and the vicar was now constrained
to believe that he had chosen the lesser part. By this time he might
have been on the General Headquarters Staff, whereas he was not even
permitted to wear the uniform of the true Church Militant.

At last with a groan of vexation the vicar dipped his pen again. And
then something happened. Without conscious volition, or overt process
of the mind, the pen began to move across the page. Slowly it traced
a succession of words, whose purport he didn’t grasp until an eye had
been passed over them. “Let us cast off the works of darkness, let us
put on the armor of light.”

Sensible at once of high inspiration he took a vital force from the
idea. It began to unseal faculties latent within him. His thoughts came
to a point at last, they grew consecutive, he could see his way, his
mind took wings. And then suddenly, alas, before he could lay pen to
paper, there came a very unfortunate interruption.




II


THERE was a knock on the study door.

“Come in,” called the vicar rather sharply.

The whole household knew that on Sunday morning those precincts were
inviolable.

His daughter Edith came hurriedly into the room. A tall, thin,
eager-looking girl, her large features and hook nose were absurdly like
her father’s. Nobody called her handsome, yet in bearing and movement
was the lithe grace the world looks for in a clean-run strain. But
lines of ill-health were in the sensitive face, and the honest, rather
near-sighted eyes had a look of tension and perplexity. An only girl,
in a country parsonage, thrown much upon herself, the war had begun to
tell its tale. Intensely proud that her brothers were in it, she could
think of nothing else. Their deeds, hazards, sacrifices were taken for
granted as far as others could guess, but they filled her with secret
disgust for her own limited activities. Limited they must remain for
some little time to come. It had been Edith’s wish to go to Serbia with
her cousin’s Red Cross unit. And in spite of the strong views of her
doctor she would have done so but for a sharp attack of illness. That
had been three months ago. She was not yet strong enough for regular
work in a hospital or a munition factory, but as an active member of
a woman’s volunteer training corps, she faithfully performed certain
local and promiscuous duties.

There was one duty, however, which Edith in her zeal had lately imposed
upon herself. Or it may have been imposed upon her by that section
of the English press from which she took her opinions. For the past
three Saturday mornings it had been carried out religiously. Known
as “rounding up the shirkers,” it consisted in making a tour of the
neighboring villages on a bicycle, and in presenting a white feather to
male members of the population of military age who were not in khaki.

The girl had just returned from the fulfillment of the weekly task. She
was in a state of excitement slightly tinged with hysteria, and that
alone was her excuse for entering that room at such a time.

At first the vicar was more concerned by her actual presence than for
the state of her feelings.

“Well, what is it?” he demanded impatiently, without looking up from
his sermon.

“I’m so sorry to disturb you, father”--the high-pitched voice had
a curious quiver in it--“but something _rather_ disagreeable has
happened. I felt that I must come and tell you.”

The vicar swung slowly round in his chair. He was an obtuse man,
therefore the girl’s excitement was still lost upon him, but he had
a fixed habit of duty. If the matter was really disagreeable he was
prepared to deal with it at once; if it admitted of qualification it
must wait until after luncheon.

There was no doubt, however, in Edith’s mind that it called for her
father’s immediate attention. Moreover, the fact was at last made clear
to him by a mounting color, and an air of growing agitation.

“Well, what’s the matter?” A certain rough kindness came into the
vicar’s tone as soon as these facts were borne in upon him. “I hope
you’ve not been overtaxing yourself. Joliffe said you would have to be
very careful for some time.”

The attempt of a somewhat emotional voice to reassure him on that point
was not altogether a success.

“Then what is the matter?” The vicar peered at her solemnly over his
spectacles.

Edith hesitated.

The vicar mobilized an impatient eyebrow.

“It’s--it’s only that wretched man, John Smith.”

Mr. Perry-Hennington gave a little start of annoyance at the mention of
the name.

“He’s quite upset me.”

“What’s he been doing now?” The vicar’s tone was an odd mingling of
scorn and curiosity.

“It’s foolish to let a man of that kind upset one,” said Edith rather
evasively.

“I agree. But tell me----?”

“It will only annoy you.” Filial regard and outraged feelings had begun
a pitched battle. “It’s merely weak to be worried by that kind of
creature.”

“My dear girl”--the tone was very stern--“tell me in just two words
what has happened.” And the vicar laid down his pen and sat back in his
chair.

“I have been insulted.” Edith made heroic fight but the sense of
outrage was too much for her.

“How? In what way?” The county magistrate had begun to take a hand in
the proceedings.

A little alarmed, Edith plunged into a narrative of events. “I had
just one feather left on my return from Heathfield,” she said, “and
as I came across the Common there was John Smith loafing about as he
so often is. So I went up to him and said: ‘I should like to give you
this.’”

A look of pained annoyance came into the vicar’s face. “It may be right
in principle,” he said, “but the method doesn’t appeal to me. And I
warned you that something of this kind might happen.”

“But he ought to be in the army. Or working at munitions.”

“Maybe. Well, you gave him the feather. And what happened?”

“First of all he kissed it. Then he put it in his buttonhole, and
struck a sort of attitude and said--let me give you his exact
words--‘And lo, the heavens were opened unto him, and he saw the Spirit
of God descending like a dove, and lighting upon him.’”

The vicar jumped up as if he had been stung. “The fellow said that! But
that’s blasphemy!”

“Exactly what I thought, father,” said Edith in an extremely emotional
voice. “I was simply horrified.”

“Atrocious blasphemy!” Seething with indignation the vicar began to
stride about the room. “This must be carried further,” he said.

To the lay mind such an incident hardly called for serious notice,
even on the part of the vicar of the parish whose function it was to
notice all things seriously. But with a subtlety of malice that Mr.
Perry-Hennington deeply resented it had searched out his weakness.
For some little time now, John Smith had been a thorn in the pastoral
cushion. Week by week this village wastrel was becoming a sorer
problem. Although the man’s outrageous speech was of a piece with the
rest of his conduct, the vicar immediately felt that it had brought
matters to a head. He had already foreseen that the mere presence in
his parish of this young man would sooner or later force certain issues
upon him. Let them now be raised. Mr. Perry-Hennington felt that he
must now face them frankly and fearlessly, once and for all, in a
severely practical way.

His imperious stridings added to Edith’s alarm.

“Somehow, father,” she ventured, “I don’t _quite_ think he meant it for
blasphemy. After all he’s hardly that kind of person.”

“Then what do you suppose the fellow did mean?” barked the vicar.

“Well, you know that half crazy way of his. After all, he may not have
meant anything in particular.”

“Whatever his intention he had no right to use such words in such a
connection. I am going to follow this matter up.”

Edith made a second rather distressed attempt to clear John Smith; the
look in her father’s face was quite alarming.

But Mr. Perry-Hennington was not to be appeased. “Sooner or later
there’s bound to be serious trouble with the fellow. And this is an
opportunity to come to grips with him. I will go now and hear what
he has to say for himself and then I must very carefully consider the
steps to be taken in a highly disagreeable matter.”

Thereupon, with the resolution of one proud of the fact that action is
his true sphere the vicar strode boldly to the hatstand in the hall.




III


AS Mr. Perry-Hennington surged through the vicarage gate in the
direction of the village green, a rising tide of indignation swept the
morrow’s discourse completely out of his mind. This was indeed a pity.
Much was going on around and its inner meanings were in themselves a
sermon. Every bush was afire with God. The sun of June was upon gorse
and heather; bees, birds, hedgerows, flowers, all were touched with
magic; larks were hovering, sap was flowing in the leaves, nature in
myriad aspects filled with color, energy and music the enchanted air.
But none of these things spoke to the vicar. He was a man of wrath.
Anger flamed within him as, head high-flung, he marched along a steep,
bracken-fringed path, in quest of one whom he could no longer tolerate
in his parish.

For some little time now, John Smith had been a trial. To begin with
this young man was an alien presence in a well-disciplined flock.
Had he been native-born, had his status and position been defined by
historical precedent, Mr. Perry-Hennington would have been better able
to deal with him. But, as he had complained rather bitterly, “John
Smith was neither fish, flesh nor well-boiled fowl.” There was no niche
in the social hierarchy that he exactly fitted; there was no ground,
except the insecure one of personal faith, upon which the vicar of the
parish could engage him.

The cardinal fact in a most difficult case was that the young man’s
mother was living in Penfold. Moreover, she was the widow of a
noncommissioned officer in a line regiment, who in the year 1886 had
been killed in action in the service of his country. John, the only
and posthumous child of an obscure soldier who had died in the desert,
had been brought to Penfold by his mother as a boy of ten. There he
had lived with her ever since in a tiny cottage on the edge of the
common; there he had grown up, and as the vicar was sadly constrained
to believe, into a freethinker, a socialist and a generally undesirable
person.

These were hard terms for Mr. Perry-Hennington to apply to anyone, but
the conduct of the black sheep of the fold was now common talk, if not
an open scandal. For one thing he was thought to be unsound on the
war. He was known to hold cranky views on various subjects, and he had
addressed meetings at Brombridge on the Universal Religion of Humanity
or some kindred high-flown theme. Moreover, he talked freely with the
young men of the neighborhood, among whom he was becoming a figure of
influence. Indeed, it was said that the source of a kind of pacifist
movement, faintly stirring up and down the district, could be traced to
John Smith.

Far worse, however, than all this, he had lately acquired a reputation
as a faith-healer. It was claimed for him by certain ignorant people
at Grayfield and Oakshott that by means of Christian Science he had
cured deafness, rheumatism and other minor ills to which the local
flesh was heir. The vicar had been too impatient of the whole matter
to investigate it. On the face of it the thing was quite absurd.
In his eyes John Smith was hardly better than a yokel, although
a man of superior education for his rank of life. Indeed, in Mr.
Perry-Hennington’s opinion, that was where the real root of the
mischief lay. The mother, who was very poor, had contrived, by means of
the needle, and by denying herself almost the necessities of life, to
send the lad for several years to the grammar school at the neighboring
town of Brombridge, where he had undoubtedly gained the rudiments of an
education far in advance of any the village school had to offer. John
had proved a boy of almost abnormal ability; and the high master of
the grammar school had been sadly disappointed that he did not find
his way to Oxford with a scholarship. Unfortunately the boy’s health
had always been delicate. He had suffered from epilepsy, and this fact,
by forbidding a course of regular study, prevented a lad of great
promise obtaining at an old university the mental discipline of which
he was thought to stand in need.

The vicar considered it was this omission which had marred the boy’s
life. None of the learned professions was open to him; his education
was both inadequate and irregular; moreover, the precarious state of
his health forbade any form of permanent employment. Situations of a
clerical kind had been found for him from time to time which he had
been compelled to give up. Physically slight, he had never been fit for
hard manual labor. Indeed, the only work with his hands for which he
had shown any aptitude was at the carpenter’s bench, and for some years
now he had eked out his mother’s slender means by assisting the village
joiner.

The unfortunate part of the matter was, however, that the end was
not here. Mentally, there could be no doubt, John Smith, a man now
approaching thirty, was far beyond the level of the carpenter’s bench.
His mind, in the vicar’s opinion, was deplorably ill-regulated, but
in certain of its aspects he was ready to admit that it had both
originality and power. The mother was a daughter of a Baptist minister
in Wales, a fact which tended to raise her son beyond the level of
his immediate surroundings; but that apart, the village carpenter’s
assistant had never yielded his boyish passion for books. He continued
to read increasingly, books to test and search a vigorous mind.
Moreover, he had an astonishing faculty of memory, and at times wrote
poetry of a mystical, ultra-imaginative kind.

The case of John Smith was still further complicated for Mr.
Perry-Hennington by the injudicious behavior of the local squire.
Gervase Brandon, a cultivated, scholarly man, had encouraged this
village ne’er-do-well in every possible way. There was reason to
believe that he had helped the mother from time to time, and John, at
any rate, had been given the freedom of the fine old library at Hart’s
Ghyll. There he could spend as many hours as he wished; therefrom he
could borrow any volume that he chose, no matter how precious it might
be; and in many delicate ways the well-meaning if over-generous squire,
had played the part of Mæcenas.

In the vicar’s opinion the inevitable sequel to Gervase Brandon’s
unwisdom had already occurred. A common goose had come to regard
himself as a full-fledged swan. It was within the vicar’s knowledge
that from time to time John Smith had given expression to views
which the ordinary layman could not hold with any sort of authority.
Moreover, when remonstrated with, “this half-educated fellow” had
always tried to stand his ground. And at the back of the vicar’s mind
still rankled a certain _mot_ of John Smith’s, duly reported by Samuel
Veale the scandalized parish clerk. He had said that, as the world was
constituted at present, the gospel according to the Reverend Thomas
Perry-Hennington seemed of more importance than the gospel according to
Jesus Christ.

When taxed with having made the statement to the village youth, John
Smith did not deny the charge. He even showed a disposition to defend
himself; and the vicar had felt obliged to end the interview by
abruptly walking away. Some months had passed since that incident. But
in his heart the vicar had not been able to forgive what he could only
regard as a piece of effrontery. Henceforward all his dealings with
John Smith were tainted by that recollection. The subject still rankled
in his mind; indeed he would have been the first to own that it was
impossible now for such a man as himself to consider the problem of
John Smith without prejudice. Moreover, he was aware that an intense
and growing personal resentment boded ill for the young man’s future
life in the parish of Penfold-with-Churley.

Sore, unhappy, yet braced with the stern delight that warriors feel,
the vicar reached the common at last. That open, furze-clad plateau
which divided Sussex from Kent and rose so sharply to the sky that
it formed a natural altar upon which the priests of old had raised a
stone was the favorite tryst of this village wastrel. As soon as Mr.
Perry-Hennington came to the end of the steep path from the vicarage
which debouched to the common, he shaded his eyes from the sun’s glare.
Straight before him, less than a hundred yards away, was the man he
sought. John Smith was leaning against the stone.

The vicar took off his hat to cool his head a little, and then swung
boldly across the turf. The young man, who was bareheaded and clad in
common workaday clothes, looked clean and neat enough, but somehow
strangely slight and frail. Gaunt of jaw and sunken-eyed, the face was
of a very unusual kind, and from time to time was lit by a smile so
vivid as to be unforgetable. But the outward aspect of John Smith had
never had anything to say to the vicar, and this morning it had even
less to say than usual.

For the vicar’s attention had been caught by something else. Upon the
young man’s finger was perched a little, timid bird. He was cooing to
it, in an odd, loving voice, and as the vicar came up he said: “Nay,
nay, don’t go. This good man will do you no harm.”

But the bird appeared to feel otherwise. By the time the vicar was
within ten yards it had flown away.

“Even the strong souls fear you, sir,” said the young man with his
swift smile, looking him frankly in the eyes.

“It is the first time one has heard such a grandiloquent term applied
to a yellow-hammer,” said the vicar coldly.

“Things are not always what they seem,” said the young man. “The wisdom
of countless ages is in that frail casket.”

“Don’t talk nonsense,” said the vicar sharply.

“Many a saint, many a hero, is borne on the wings of a dove.”

“Transcendental rubbish.” The vicar mopped his face with his
handkerchief, and then he began: “Smith”--he was too angry to use the
man’s Christian name--“my daughter tells me you have been blasphemous.”

The young man, who still wore the white feather in his coat, looked at
the angry vicar with an air of gentle surprise.

“Please don’t deny it,” said the vicar, taking silence for a desire to
rebut the charge. “She has repeated to me word for word your mocking
speech when you put that symbol of cowardice in your buttonhole.”

John Smith looked at the vicar with his deep eyes and then he said
slowly and softly: “If my words have hurt her I am very sorry.”

This speech, in spite of its curious gentleness, added fuel to the
vicar’s anger.

“The humility you affect does not lessen their offense,” he said
sharply.

“Where lies the offense you speak of?” The question was asked simply,
with a grave smile.

“If it is not clear to you,” said the vicar with acid dignity, “it
shall not be my part to explain it. I am not here to bandy words.
Nor do I intend to chop logic. You consider yourself vastly clever,
no doubt. But I have to warn you that the path you follow is full of
peril.”

“Yes, the path we are following is full of peril.”

“Whom do you mean by ‘we’?” said the vicar sternly.

“Mankind. All of us.”

“That does not affect the question. Let us leave the general alone, let
us keep to the particular.”

“But how can we leave the general alone, how can we keep to the
particular, when we are all members of one another?”

The vicar checked him with an imperious hand.

“Blasphemer.” he said with growing passion, “how dare you parody the
words of the Master?”

“No one can parody the words of the Master. Either they are or they are
not.”

“I am not here to argue with you. Understand, John Smith, that in all
circumstances I decline to chop logic with--with a person of your sort.”

It added to this young man’s offense in the eyes of the vicar that he
had presumed to address him as an intellectual equal. It was true that
in a way of delicate irony, which even Mr. Perry-Hennington was not
too dense to perceive, this extraordinary person deferred continually
to the social and mental status of his questioner. It was the manner
of one engaged in rendering to Cæsar the things that are Cæsar’s, but
every word masked by the gentle voice was so subtly provocative that
Mr. Perry-Hennington felt a secret humiliation in submitting to them.
The implication made upon his mind was that the rôle of teacher and
pupil had been reversed.

This unpleasant feeling was aggravated to the point of the unbearable
by John Smith’s next words.

“Judge not,” he said softly. “Once priests judged Jesus Christ.”

The vicar recoiled.

“Abominable!” he said, and he clenched his fists as if he would strike
him. “Blasphemer!”

The young man smiled sadly. “I only speak the truth,” he said. “If it
wounds you, sir, the fault is not mine.”

Mr. Perry-Hennington made a stern effort to keep himself in hand.
It was unseemly to bandy words with a man of this kind. Yet, as he
belonged to the parish, the vicar in a sense was responsible for him;
therefore it became his duty to find out what was at the back of his
mind. Curbing as well as he could an indignation that threatened every
moment to pass beyond control, he called upon John Smith to explain
himself.

“You say you only speak the truth as it has been shown you. First I
would ask whence it comes, and then I would ask how do you know it for
the truth?”

“It has been communicated by the Father.”

“Don’t be so free with the name of God,” said the vicar sternly. “And
I, at any rate, take leave to doubt it.”

“There is a voice I hear within me. And being divine it speaks only the
truth.”

“How do you know it is divine?”

“How do I know the grass is green, the sky blue, the heather purple?
How do I know the birds sing?”

“That is no answer,” said the vicar. “It is open to anyone to claim a
divine voice within did not modesty forbid.”

The smile of John Smith was so sweetly simple that it could not have
expressed an afterthought. “Had you a true vocation,” he said, “would
you find such uses for your modesty?”

The vicar, torn between a desire to rebuke what he felt to be an
intolerable impertinence and a wish to end an interview that boded ill
to his dignity, could only stand irresolute. Yet this odd creature
spoke so readily, with a precision so rare and curious that his every
word seemed to acquire a kind of authority. Bitterly chagrined, half
insulted as the vicar was, he determined to continue the argument if
only for the sake of a further light upon the man’s state of mind.

“You claim to hear a divine voice. Is it for that reason, may one ask,
that you feel licensed to utter such appalling blasphemies?”

John Smith smiled again in his odd way.

“You speak like the men of old time,” he said softly.

“I use the King’s English,” said the vicar. “And I use it as
pointedly, as expressively, as sincerely as lies in my power. I mean
every word I say. You claim the divine voice, yet all that it speaks is
profanity and corruption.”

“As was said of the prophets of old?”

“You claim to be a prophet?”

“Yes, I claim to be a prophet.”

“That is interesting.” There was a sudden change of tone as the vicar
realized the importance of the admission. He saw that it might have a
very important bearing upon his future course of action. “You claim to
be a prophet in order that you may blaspheme the Creator.”

“I claim to be a prophet of the good, the beautiful, and the true.
I claim to hear the voice of the eternal. And if these things be
blasphemous in your sight, I can only grieve for your election.”

“Leave me out of it, if you please.” The clean thrust had stung the
vicar to fury. “I know perfectly well where and how I stand, and if
there is the slightest doubt in the matter it will be the province of
my bishop to resolve it. But with you, Smith, who, I am ashamed to say,
are one of my parishioners, it is a very different matter. In your case
I have my duty to perform. It is one that can only cause me the deepest
pain and anxiety, but I am determined that nothing shall interfere
with it. Forgive my plainness, but your mind is in a most disorderly
state. I am afraid Mr. Brandon is partly to blame. I have told him
more than once that it was folly to give you the run of his library.
You have been encouraged to read books beyond your mental grasp, or at
least beyond your power to assimilate becomingly, in the manner of a
gentleman. You are a half-educated man--it is my duty to speak out--and
like all such men you are wise in your own conceit. Now there is reason
to believe that, in virtue of an old statute which is still operative,
you have made yourself amenable to the law of the land. At all events I
intend to find out. And then will arise the question as to how far it
will be one’s duty to move in this matter.”

Mr. Perry-Hennington watched the young man narrowly as he uttered this
final threat. He had the satisfaction of observing that John Smith
changed color a little. If, however, he had hoped to frighten the man
it was by no means clear that he had succeeded.

“You follow your conscience, sir,” he said with a sweet unconcern that
added to the vicar’s inward fury. “And I try to follow mine. But it is
right to say to you that you are entering upon a deep coil. The soul of
man is abroad in a dark night, yet the door is still open, and I pray
that you at least will not seek to close it.”

“The door--still open!” The vicar looked at him in amazement. “What
door?”

“The door for all mankind.”

“You speak in riddles.”

“For the present let them so remain. But I will give you a piece of
news. At two o’clock this morning a presence entered my room and said:
‘I am Goethe and I have come to pray for Germany.’”

The vicar could only gaze in silence at John Smith.

“And I said: ‘Certainly, I am very glad to pray for Germany,’ and we
knelt and prayed together. And then he rose and showed me the little
town with its quaint gables and turrets where he sleeps at night, and I
asked him to have courage and then I embraced him and then he left me,
saying he would return again.”

The vicar heard him to the end with a growing stupefaction. Such a
speech in its complete detachment from the canons of reason could only
mean that the man was unhinged. The words themselves would bear no
other interpretation; but in spite of that the vicar’s amazement soon
gave way to a powerful resentment. At that moment the sense of outrage
was stronger in him than anything else.

A certain practical sagacity enabled him to see at once that an
abyss had opened between this grotesquely undisciplined mind and his
own. The man might be merely recounting a dream, indulging a fancy,
weaving an allegory, but at whatever angle he was approached by an
incumbent of the Established Church, only one explanation could cover
such lawlessness. The man was not of sound mind. And after all that
was the one truly charitable interpretation of his whole demeanor and
attitude. An ill-regulated, morbidly sensitive organization had broken
down in the stress of those events which had sorely tried an intellect
as stable as Mr. Perry-Hennington’s own. Indeed it was only right to
think so; otherwise, the vicar would have found it impossible to curb
himself. Even as it was he dared not trust himself to say a word in
reply. All at once he turned abruptly on his heel and walked away as on
a former occasion.




IV


AS the vicar made his way across the green toward the village he
deliberated very gravely. It was clear that such a matter would have to
be followed up. But he must not act precipitately. Fully determined now
not to flinch from an onerous task, he must look before and after.

Two courses presented themselves to his sense of outrage. And he must
choose without delay. Before committing himself to definite action he
must either see Gervase Brandon, whom he felt bound in a measure to
blame for John Smith’s state of mind, and take advice as to what should
be done, or he must see the young man’s mother and ask her help. It
chanced, however, that Mrs. Smith’s cottage was near by. Indeed it
skirted the common, and he had raised the latch of her gate before he
realized that the decision had somehow been made for him, apparently by
a force outside himself.

It was a very humble abode, typical of that part of the world, but a
trim hedge of briar in front, a growth of honeysuckle above the porch,
and a low roof of thatch gave it a rustic charm. The door stone had
been freshly whitened, and the window curtains, simple though they
were, were so neat and clean that the outward aspect of Rose Cottage
was almost one of refinement.

The vicar’s sharp knock was answered by a village girl, a timid
creature of fourteen. At the sight of the awe-inspiring figure on the
threshold, she bobbed a curtsey, and in reply to the question: “Is Mrs.
Smith at home?” gurgled an inaudible “Yiss surr.”

“Is that the vicar?” said a faint voice.

Mr. Perry-Hennington said reassuringly that it was, and entered
briskly, with that air of decision the old ladies of the parish greatly
admired.

A puny, white-haired woman was seated in an armchair in the chimney
corner, with a shawl over her shoulders. She had the pinched, wistful
look of the permanent invalid, yet the peaked face and the vivid eyes
had great intelligence. But they were also full of suffering, and the
vicar, at heart genuinely kind, was struck by it at once.

“How are you today, Mrs. Smith?” he said.

“No better and no worse than I’ve been this last two years,” said the
widow in a voice that had not a trace of complaint. “It is very kind of
you to come and see me. I wish I could come to church.”

“I wish you could, Mrs. Smith.” The vicar took a chair by her side.
“It would be a privilege to have you with us again.”

The widow smiled wanly. “It has been ordained otherwise,” she said.
“And I know better than to question. God moves in a mysterious way.”

“Yes, indeed.” The vicar was a little moved to find John Smith’s
mother in a state of grace. “There is strength and compensation in the
thought.”

“If one has found the Kingdom it doesn’t matter how long one is tied to
one’s chair.”

“It gratifies me to hear you say that.” The vicar spoke in a measured
tone. And then suddenly, as he looked at the calm face of the sufferer,
he grew hopeful. “Mrs. Smith,” he said, with the directness upon which
he prided himself, “I have come to speak to you about your boy.”

“About John?” The widow, the name on her lips, lowered her voice to a
rapt, hushed whisper.

The vicar drew his chair a little closer to the invalid. “I am very,
very sorry to cause you any sort of trouble, but I want to ask you to
use your influence with him; I want to ask you to give him something of
your own state of mind.”

The widow looked at the vicar in surprise. “But,” she said softly, “it
is my boy John who has made me as I am.”

The vicar was a little disconcerted. “Surely,” he said, “it is God who
has made you what you are.”

“Yes, but it is through my boy John that He has wrought upon me.”

“Indeed! Tell me how that came to be.”

The widow shook her head and smiled to herself. “Don’t ask me to do
that,” she said. “It is a long and wonderful story.”

But the vicar insisted.

“No, no, I can’t tell you. I don’t think anyone would believe me. And
the time has not yet come for the story to be told.”

The vicar still insisted, but this feeble creature had a will as
tenacious as his own. His curiosity had been fully aroused, but common
sense told him that in all human probability he had to deal with the
hallucinations of an old and bed-ridden woman. A simple intensity of
manner and words oddly devout made it clear that she was in a state of
grace, yet it would seem to be rooted in some illusion in which her
worthless son was involved. Although the vicar was without subtlety, he
somehow felt that it would hardly be right to shatter that illusion.
At the same time the key to his character was duty. And his office
asked that in this case it should be rigidly performed. Let all
possible light be cast upon the mental history of this man, even if
an old and poor woman be stricken in the process. A cruel dilemma was
foreshadowed, but let it be faced manfully.

“Mrs. Smith,” he said after a trying pause, “I am very sorry, but there
is bad news to give you of your son.”

The effect of the words was remarkable.

“Oh, what has happened to him?” The placid face changed in an instant;
one hand clutched at the thin bosom.

The vicar hastened to quell her fears. “Nothing has happened to him,”
he said in a grave, kind tone, “but I grieve to say that his conduct
leaves much to be desired.”

The widow could only stare at the vicar incredulously.

“I am greatly troubled about him. For a long time now I have known
him to be a disseminator of idle and mischievous opinions. I have
long suspected him of being a corrupter of our village youth. This
morning”--carried away by a sudden warmth of feeling the vicar forgot
the mother’s frailty--“he insulted my daughter with a most blasphemous
remark, and when I ventured to remonstrate with him he entered upon a
farrago of light and meaningless talk. In a word, Mrs. Smith, much as
it grieves me to say so, I find your son an atheist, a socialist and
a freethinker and I am very deeply concerned for his future in this
parish.”

In the stress of indignation the vicar did not temper the wind to
the shorn lamb. But the widow was less disconcerted than he felt he
had a right to expect her to be. It was true that she listened with
amazement, but far from being distressed, she met him with frank
skepticism. It deepened an intense annoyance to find that she simply
could not believe him.

He gave her chapter and verse. But a categorical indictment called
forth the remark that, “John was such a great scholar that ordinary
people could not be expected to understand him.”

Such a statement added fuel to the flame. Mr. Perry-Hennington did
not pretend to scholarship himself, but he had such a keen and just
appreciation of that quality in other people that these ignorant words
aroused a pitying contempt. The mother’s attitude could only be taken
as a desire to shield and uphold her son.

“Well, Mrs. Smith,” said the vicar, rising from his chair, “I have to
tell you that talk of this kind cannot be tolerated here. I very much
hope you will speak to him on the matter.”

“But who am I, vicar, that I should presume to speak to him?”

“You are his mother.”

“Of late I have begun to doubt whether I can be his mother.”

The vicar looked at the widow in amazement. “Surely you know whether or
not he is your son?” he said in stern surprise.

“Yes, he is the child of my body, but I grow afraid to claim him as
mine.”

“For what reason?”

“He is not as other men.”

“I don’t understand you,” said the vicar with stern impatience.

The widow looked at the vicar with a sudden light of ecstasy in her
eyes. “I can only tell you,” she said, “that my husband was killed in
battle months before a son was born to me. I can only tell you that
I prayed and prayed continually that there might be no more wars. I
can only tell you that one night an angel came to me and said that my
prayer had been heard and would shortly be answered. I was told that I
should live to see a war that would end all wars. And then my boy was
born and I called him John Emanuel.”

The vicar mustered all his patience as he listened, half-scandalized,
to the widow’s statement. He had to fortify himself with the obvious
fact that she was a feeble creature who had known many sorrows, whose
mind had at last given way. Somehow he felt a shocked resentment, but
she was so palpably sincere that it was impossible to visit it upon
her. And then the thought came to him that this pitiful illusion was
going to add immensely to his difficulties. Having always known her
for a decent woman and, when in health, a regular churchgoer, he had
counted confidently upon her help. It came as a further embarrassment
to find her mind affected. For her sake he might have been inclined to
temporize a little with the son, in the hope that she would bring the
influence of a known good woman to bear upon him. But that hope was now
vain. The widow’s own mind was in a state of almost equal disorder,
and any steps the matter might demand must now be taken without her
sanction.

Had the mother infected the son, or had the son infected the mother
was now the vicar’s problem. Regarding the one as a natural complement
to the other, and reading them together, he saw clearly that both were
a little unhinged. Beyond all things a good and humane man, he could
not help blaming himself a little that he had not realized sooner the
true state of the case. Now that he had spoken with the mother, the
son became more comprehensible. Without a doubt the one had reacted
on the other. It simplified the task it would be his bounden duty to
perform, even if it did not make it less repugnant. The fact that two
persons shared such a fantastic illusion made it doubly imperative that
immediate steps should be taken in a matter which Mr. Perry-Hennington
was now viewing with a growing concern.

“Mrs. Smith,” he said very sternly, “there is one question I feel
bound to ask. Am I right in the assumption that you regard your son as
a--er--a messiah?”

The answer came at once.

“Yes, vicar, I do,” said the widow falteringly. “The angel of the Lord
appeared to me, and my son John--if my son he is--has come to fulfill
the Prophecy.”




V


THE vicar left Rose Cottage in a state of the deepest perturbation he
had ever known. He was not the kind of man who submits lightly to any
such feeling, but again the sensation came upon him, which he had first
felt half an hour ago in his amazing interview with John Smith, that
an abyss had suddenly opened under his feet, into which he had already
stumbled.

That such heresies should be current in his own little cure of
Penfold-with-Churley, with which he had taken such infinite trouble for
the past thirty-five years, that they should arise in his own personal
epoch, and that of his favorite books and newspapers and friends and
fellow workers and thinkers, was so remarkable that he hardly knew
how to face the sore problem to which they gave rise. Unquestionably
such ideas were a by-product of this terrible war which was tearing
up civilization by the roots. In a sense there was consolation in
the thought. Abnormal events give rise to abnormal mental processes.
Half-developed, ill-regulated, morbidly impressionable minds were
very likely to be overthrown by such a phase as the world was now
passing through. But even that reflection did little to reduce Mr.
Perry-Hennington’s half-indignant sense of horror, or to soften the
fierce ordeal in which he was now involved.

What should he do? An old shirker of issues he did not look for help in
the quarter where some might have sought it. He was therefore content
to put his question to the bracken, to the yellow gorse, to the golden
light of heaven which was now beginning to beat uncomfortably upon him.

“Why do anything?” answered the inner voice of the university graduate
qua the county gentleman. “Edith is naturally a little upset, but the
question to ask oneself is: Are these poor crackbrains really doing any
harm?”

Mr. Perry-Hennington had been long accustomed to identify that
particular voice with the highest part of himself. In many of the minor
crises which had arisen in his life he had thankfully and gratefully
followed it. There were times undoubtedly when it was the duty of a
prudent person to turn the blind eye to the telescope. But a very
little reflection convinced him that this occasion was not one of them.

Apart from the fact that it was quite impossible to allow such a
fantastic heresy to arise in his parish, there was the public interest
to consider. The country was living under martial law, and it had
come to his knowledge that the King’s enemies were receiving open
countenance. The man Smith was a poor sort of creature enough, however
one might regard him, but he was thought to have influence among
persons of his own standing, and it was said to be growing. Moreover,
there was “his faith-healing tomfoolery” to be taken into account; at
the best a trivial business, yet also a portent, which was having an
effect upon the credulous and the ignorant. Therefore the man must
be put in his place. And if possible he must be taught a lesson. The
subject was beset with thorns of the prickliest kind, but the vicar had
never lacked moral courage of an objective sort, and he felt he would
be unworthy of his cloth if for a moment he allowed himself to shirk
his obvious duty.

While a rather hide-bound intellect set squarely to the problem before
it, Mr. Perry-Hennington marched slowly along the only attempt at a
street that the village of Penfold could boast. At the far end was
a massive pair of iron gates picked out with gold, surmounted by a
medieval arch of stone, upon which a coat of arms was emblazoned.
Beyond these portals was a short avenue of glorious trees which led
to the beautiful old house known as Hart’s Ghyll, the seat for many
generations of the squires of Penfold.

The symbol above the gates brought the vicar up short with a shock
of surprise. Unconscious of the direction in which the supraliminal
self had been leading him, he was inclined to accept it as the clear
direction of a force beyond himself. It seemed, therefore, right to
go at once and lay this difficult matter before Gervase Brandon, the
man whom he felt bound to blame more than anyone else for John Smith’s
unhappy state of mind.

The owner of Hart’s Ghyll, having married Mr. Perry-Hennington’s
niece, could claim to be his relation by marriage. Brandon, a man
of forty-two, born to the purple of assured social position, rich,
cultivated, happily wed, the father of two delightful children, had
seemed to possess everything that the heart of man could desire.
Moreover, he had a reputation not merely local as a humane and liberal
thinker--a too liberal thinker in the opinion of the vicar, who was
proud to belong to a sturdier school. A model landlord who housed his
laborers in absurdly modern and hygienic dwellings, who, somewhat to
the scandal of less enlightened neighbors, allowed his smaller tenants
to farm his land at purely nominal rents, he did his best to foster a
spirit of thrift, independence and true communal feeling.

As a consequence there were those who held the squire of Penfold to be
a mirror of all the virtues. There was also a smaller but vastly more
influential class which could not bear to hear his name mentioned. He
was mad, said the county Guys of the district. The vicar of Penfold
did not go quite to that length, but he sympathized with the point of
view. When he lunched and dined, as he often did, with the neighboring
magnates, he was wont to sigh sadly over “that fellow Brandon,” and
at the same time gravely lament, but not without an air of plaintive
humor, that niece Millicent had yet to teach him sense. And this
statement always involved the corollary that niece Millicent’s failure
was the more surprising since the Perry-Henningtons were a sound old
Tory stock.

The opinion current in old-port-drinking circles was that Gervase
Brandon was as charming a fellow as you would meet in a day’s march,
but that he was overeducated--he had been a don at Oxford before he
came into the property--and that he had more money to spend than was
good for him. For some years he had been “queering the pitch” for less
happily placed neighbors and contemporaries, and these found it hard
to forgive him. They had prophesied that the day would come when his
vagaries would cause trouble, and at the moment the famous Brandon coat
of arms of the lion and the dove, and its motto: “Let the weak help the
strong, let the strong help the weak,” came within the vicar’s purview,
he felt that the prophecy had been most oddly, not to say dramatically,
fulfilled.

If blame there was for the appearance of a Mad Mullah in the parish,
without a doubt it must be laid to the door of Gervase Brandon. In the
most absurd way he had long encouraged one whom the vicar could only
regard as a wastrel. He had allowed this incorrigible fellow the run of
the Hart’s Ghyll library, and the vicar recalled meeting John Smith in
the village street with a priceless Elzevir copy of Plato’s Theætetus
under his arm, the Brandon crest stamped on the leather, the Brandon
bookplate inside. The vicar understood that the man had been a frequent
visitor at the house, that money had been given him from time to time,
and that the mother had been allowed to occupy the cottage on the
common rent free. Was it to be wondered at that a weak, half-developed
brain had been thrown off its balance?

In these circumstances it was right that Gervase Brandon should be made
to understand the mischief he had wrought; it was right that he should
be called upon to take a hand in the adjustment of the coil. But as
Mr. Perry-Hennington passed through the gate of Hart’s Ghyll and walked
slowly up the avenue toward the house there was still a reservation
in his mind. As matters were with Brandon now he might not be able
to grapple with a problem of a nature to make heavy demands upon the
mental and moral faculties.

The vicar had scarcely entered upon this aspect of the case, when the
sight of a spinal carriage in the care of two nurses forbade any more
speculation upon the subject. He was suddenly brought face to face with
reality in a grimly practical shape.

“How are you this morning, Gervase?” said the vicar, stopping the
little procession with a hearty voice. The question was addressed to a
gaunt, hollow-eyed man in a green dressing gown, who was propped up on
pillows.

“I’ve nothing to complain of,” said Gervase Brandon. He spoke in a
calm, gentle way. “Another capital night.”

“Do you still have pain?”

“None for a week, I’m thankful to say. But I touch wood!”

The optimistic, almost gay tone did not deceive the vicar. The tragic
part of the matter was that the cessation of pain was not a hopeful
sign. Brandon might not have known that. This morning, at any rate, he
had the half-defiant cheerfulness of one who did not intend to admit
physical calamity. Yet he must have well understood the nature of the
thing that had come upon him. For three long, terrible months he had
lain on his back, paralyzed from the waist down, the result of shell
shock sustained on the beaches of Gallipoli. There was every reason to
fear a lesion of certain ganglia, and little hope was now held out that
he would ever walk again.

To a man in meridian pride of body such a prospect hardly bore thinking
about. But the blow had been borne with a fortitude at which even a
man so unimaginative as the vicar could only marvel. Not again would
the owner of Hart’s Ghyll prune his roses, or drive a golf ball, or
cast a fly, or take a pot shot at a rabbit; not again would he take his
children on his knee.

Brandon had always been the least militant of men. His instincts were
liberal and humane, and in the happy position of being able to live
as he chose he had gratified them to the full. He had had everything
to attach him to existence; if ever fortune had had a favorite it was
undoubtedly he. It had given him everything, with a great zest in life
as a crowning boon. But in August, 1914, in common with so many of his
countrymen, he had cast every personal consideration to the wind and
embraced a life which he loathed with every fiber of his being.

He had only allowed himself one reason for the voluntary undertaking of
a bestial task, and it was the one many others of his kind had given:
“So that that chap won’t have to do it”--the chap in question being
an engaging, curly-headed urchin still in the care of a governess.
Well, the father had “done his bit,” but as far as the small son was
concerned there was no guaranty that it had not been done in vain. And
none knew that better than the shattered man propped up in the spinal
carriage.

The sight of Gervase Brandon had done something to weaken the vicar’s
resolve. It hardly seemed right to torment the poor fellow with this
extremely disagreeable matter. Yet a moment’s reflection convinced Mr.
Perry-Hennington that it would be most unwise to take any decisive step
without discussing it with the man best able to throw light upon it.
Moreover, as the vicar recognized, Brandon’s mental powers did not seem
to have shared his body’s eclipse. He appeared to enjoy them to the
full; in fact it might be said that complete physical prostration had
added to their perceptiveness. Whenever the vicar talked with him now
he was much impressed by the range and quality of his mind.

“Gervase,” said the vicar after a brief mental survey of the position,
“I wonder if I might venture to speak to you about something that is
troubling me a good deal?”

“Certainly, certainly,” said the occupant of the spinal carriage, with
an alert, almost eager smile. “If there’s any way in which I can be of
the slightest use, or any way in which you think I can I shall be only
too delighted.”

“I hate having to bother you with a matter of this kind. But it is
likely that you know something about it. And I am greatly in need of
advice, which I hope you may be able to give.”

“I hope I may.” The vicar’s gravity was not lost upon Brandon. “Perhaps
you would like to discuss it in the library?”

“If you don’t mind.”




VI


TO the library the spinal carriage was taken. When it had been wheeled
into the sunny embrasure of that wonderful room, which even the vicar
never entered without a slight pang of envy, the nurses retired,
leaving the two men together.

The library of Hart’s Ghyll was richly symbolical of the aristocracy
of an old country. It had once been part of a monastery which had been
set, as happened invariably when religion had a monopoly of learning
and taste, in the fairest spot the countryside could offer for the
purpose. From the large mullioned window the view of Hart’s Ghyll and
its enchanted vistas of hill, stream and woodland beyond was a miracle
of beauty. And the walls of the room displayed treasures above price,
such a collection of first editions and old masters as even a man
so insensitive as the vicar sometimes recalled in his dreams. Their
present owner, who in the vicar’s opinion had imbibed the modern spirit
far too freely, had often said that he could not defend possession in
such abundance by one who had done nothing to earn it. In an ideal
state, had declared this advanced thinker, these things would be part
of the commonweal--a theory which Mr. Perry-Hennington considered
fantastic. To his mind, as he had informed niece Millicent, it was
perilously like an affront to the order of divine providence.

The spirit of place seemed to descend upon the vicar, as in a hushed,
rather solemn tone, he asked Brandon whether the sun would be too much
for him.

“Not for a man who has been grilled in Gallipoli,” answered Brandon
with a stoic’s smile. “But if you will open that window a little wider
and roll me back a bit, I shall have my own piece of earth to look at.
Give me this and you may take the rest of Christendom. It’s been soaked
into my bones, into my brain. One ought to be a Virgil or a Wordsworth.”

“Which I hope you may presently prove, my dear fellow,” said the vicar,
touched by a sense of the man’s heroism.

“Alas, they are born.”

“In spirit at any rate you are with them.” The vicar was moved to an
infrequent compliment.

But he had suddenly grown nervous. Now that he was face to face with
his task he didn’t know how to enter upon it. The wave of indignation
which had borne him as far as the library of Hart’s Ghyll had been
dissipated by the presence of a suffering it was surely inhuman to
embarrass. The younger man, his rare faculty of perception strung to
a high pitch, saw at once the vicar’s hesitation. Like an intensely
sympathetic woman, Brandon began unconsciously to help him disburden
his mind of that which was trying it so sorely.

At last Mr. Perry-Hennington found himself at the point where it became
possible to break the ice.

“My dear Gervase,” he said, “there is nothing I dislike more than
having to ask you to share my troubles, but a most vexing matter has
arisen, and you are the only person whose advice I feel I can take.”

“I only hope I can be of use.”

“Well--it’s John Smith.” The vicar took the plunge. And as he did so,
he was sufficiently master of himself to watch narrowly the face of the
stricken man.

Brandon fixed deep eyes upon the vicar.

“But he’s such a harmless fellow.” The light tone, the placid smile,
told nothing.

“I admit, of course, that one oughtn’t to be worried by a village
wastrel.”

“I challenge the term,” said Brandon with the note of airy banter which
always charmed. “Not for the first time, you know. I’m afraid we shall
never agree about the dear chap.”

“No, I’m afraid we shall not.” The vicar could not quite keep
resentment out of his voice. But in deference to a graceful and perhaps
merited rebuke, the controversialist lowered his tone a little. “But
let me give you the facts.”

Thereupon, with a naïveté not lost upon the man in the spinal carriage,
Mr. Perry-Hennington very solemnly related the incident of the white
feather.

Brandon said nothing, but looked at the vicar fixedly.

“I hate having to worry you in this way.” Mr. Perry-Hennington watched
narrowly the drawn face. “Of course it had to be followed up. At first,
I’ll confess, I took it to be a mere piece of blasphemous bravado in
execrable taste, but now I’ve seen the man, now I’ve talked with him, I
have come to another conclusion.”

The vicar saw that Brandon’s eyes were full of an intense, eager
interest.

“Well?” said the sufferer softly.

“The conclusion I have come to is that it’s a case of paranoia.”

“That is to say, you think he intended the statement to be taken
literally?”

“I do. But I didn’t realize that all at once. When I accused him
of blasphemy he defended himself with a farrago of quasi mystical
gibberish which amounted to nothing, and he ended with a perfectly
fantastic statement. Let me give it you word for word. ‘At two o’clock
this morning a presence entered my room and said, “I am Goethe and I
have come to pray for Germany.” And I said, “Certainly, I shall be
very glad to pray for Germany,” and we knelt and prayed together. And
then he rose and showed me the little town with its quaint gables and
turrets where he sleeps at night, and I asked him to have courage and
then I embraced him and then he left me, saying he would return again.’”

Brandon’s face had an ever-deepening interest, but he did not venture
upon a remark.

“Of course,” said the vicar, “one’s answer should have been, ‘My
friend, he who aids, abets and harbors an unregistered alien enemy
becomes amenable to the Defense of the Realm Regulations.’”

“What was your answer?” The look of bewilderment was growing upon
Brandon’s face.

“I made none. I was completely bowled out. But I went at once to see
the mother. And this is where the oddest part of all comes in. After
a little conversation with the mother, I discovered that she most
sincerely believes that her son is--is a messiah.”

Again the stricken man closed his eyes.

“There we have the clue. In a very exalted way she told me how her son
was born six months after her husband had been killed in action. She
told me how she had prayed that all wars might cease, how an angel
appeared to her with a promise that she would live to see the war
which would end all wars; she told me how a son was born to her in
fulfillment of the prophecy, and how she christened him John Emanuel. I
was astounded. But now I have had time to think about the matter much
is explained. The man is clearly suffering from illusions prenatally
induced. There is no doubt a doctor would tell us that it explains his
fits. It also accounts for his faith-healing nonsense. And there is no
doubt that mother and son have reacted upon one another in such a way
that they are now stark crazy.”

“And that is your deliberate opinion?”

“With the facts before me I can come to no other. It is the only
charitable explanation. Otherwise I should have felt it to be my duty
to institute a prosecution under the blasphemy laws. Only the other
day there was a man--a tailor, I believe--imprisoned under the statute
of Henry VII. But if, as there is now every reason to think, it is a
simple case of insanity, one will be relieved from that disagreeable
necessity.”

Brandon concurred.

“But as you will readily see, my dear Gervase, the alternative is
almost equally distressing. To clear him of the charge of blasphemy it
will be necessary to prove him insane; and in that event, of course, he
cannot remain at large.”

“Surely the poor chap is quite harmless?”

“Harmless!” Mr. Perry-Hennington had difficulty in keeping his voice
under control. “A man who goes about the parish proclaiming himself a
god!”

“He has Plotinus with him at any rate.” Again the stricken man closed
his eyes. “How says the sage? ‘Surely before this descent into
generation we existed in the intelligible world; being other men than
now we are, and some of us Gods; clear souls and minds immixed with all
existence; parts of the Intelligible, nor severed thence; nor are we
severed even now.’”[1]

[Footnote 1: Enn VI. 4, 14 [F. W. H. Myers].]

“Really, my dear Gervase,” said the vicar, trying very hard to
curb a growing resentment, “one should hesitate to quote the pagan
philosophers in a matter of this kind.”

“I can’t agree. They are far wiser than us in the only thing that
matters after all. They have more windows open in the soul.”

“No, no.” Mr. Perry-Hennington strove against vehemence. “Still, we
won’t go into that.” He was on perilous ground. Of late years Brandon
himself had been a thorn in the sacerdotal cushion. The modern spirit
had led him to skepticism, so that, in the vicar’s phrase, “he had
become an alien in the household of faith.” Now was not the moment
to open an old wound or to revive the embers of controversy. But the
vicar felt the old spiritual enmity, which Brandon’s stoic heroism had
lulled to sleep, again stirring his blood. Therefore, he must not allow
himself to be involved in a false issue. Let him keep rigidly to the
business in hand. And the business in hand was: What shall be done with
John Smith?

It was clear at once that in Brandon’s opinion there was no need to do
anything. The vicar felt ruefully that he should have foreseen this
attitude. But he had a right to hope that Brandon’s recent experiences,
even if they had not changed him fundamentally, would have done
something to modify the central heresies. Nothing was further from the
vicar’s desire than to bear hardly upon one who had carried himself so
nobly, but Brandon’s air of tolerance was a laxity not to be borne. Mr.
Perry-Hennington’s soul was on fire. It was as much as he could do to
hold himself in hand.

“You see, my dear fellow,” he said, “as the case presents itself to me,
I must do one of two things. Either I must institute a prosecution for
blasphemy, so that the law may deal with him, or, as I think would be
the wiser and more humane course, I must take steps to have him removed
to an asylum.”

“But why do anything?”

“I feel it to be my duty.”

“But he’s so harmless. And a dear fellow.”

“I wish I could share your opinion. I can only regard him as a plague
spot in the parish. Insanity is his only defense and it has taken such
a noxious form that it may infect others.”

“Hardly likely, one would think.”

“We live in abnormal times. I am very sorry, but I can only regard this
man as a moral danger to the community. Edith was greatly shocked.
I was greatly shocked. You must excuse my saying so, Gervase, but I
cannot help feeling that in the circumstances the vast majority of
right-thinking people would be.”

“But who are the people who think rightly?”

Mr. Perry-Hennington raised a deprecating hand. Yet Brandon, having
acted in the way he had, was entitled to put the question. He had given
more than life for an idea, and that fact made it immensely difficult
for the vicar to deal with him as faithfully as he could have wished.
He was face to face with a skeptic, but the skeptic was intrenched in a
special position where neither contempt nor active reproach of any kind
must visit him.

But in spite of himself the old slumbering antagonisms were now
awake in the vicar. Brandon, too, was a dangerous paradoxical
man. Notwithstanding the honor and the love he bore him, Mr.
Perry-Hennington felt his pulses quicken, his fibers stiffen. If ever
man did, he saw his duty straight and clear. The only real problem was
how to do it with the least affront to others, with the least harm to
the community.

“By the way,” said Brandon, his gentle voice filling an awkward pause
that had suddenly ensued, “have you ever really talked with John Smith?”

“Oh, yes, many times.”

“I mean have you ever really tried--if I may put it that way--to get at
the back of his mind?”

“As far as one can. But to me he seems to have precious little in
the way of mind to get at the back of. As far as one’s own limited
intelligence will allow one to judge, the mind of John Smith seems a
half-baked morass, a mere hotch-potch of moonstruck transcendentalisms,
overlaid with a kind of Swedenborgian mysticism, if one may so express
oneself. To me it seems a case where a little regular training at
a university and the clear thinking it induces would have been of
enormous value.”

Brandon smiled. “Have you seen his poem?” he asked.

“No.” The answer was short; and then the vicar asked in a tone which
had a tinge of disgust, “Written a poem, has he?”

“He brought it to me the other day.” Again Brandon closed his eyes. “To
my mind it is very remarkable,” he said half to himself.

“It would be, no doubt,” said the vicar, half to himself also.

“I should like you to read it.”

“I prefer not to do so,” said the vicar after a pause. “My mind is
quite made up about him. It would only vex me further to read anything
he may have written. We live by deeds, not by words, and never more so
than in this stern time.”

“To my mind, it is a very wonderful poem,” said the stricken man. “I
don’t think I am morbidly impressionable--I hope I’m not--but that poem
haunts me. It is even changing my outlook. It is an extravagant thing
to say, but the feeling it leaves on one’s mind is that if a spectator
of all time and all existence, a sort of Cosmostheorus, were to visit
the planet at this moment, it is the way in which he might be expected
to deliver himself.”

“Neoplatonism of the usual brand, I presume.” There was a slight curl
of a thin lip.

“Of a very unusual brand, I assure you. It may be neoplatonism, and
yet--no--one cannot give it a label. There is the Something Else behind
it.” Once more the stricken man closed his eyes. “Yes, there is the
Something Else. The thing infolds me like a dream, a passion. I feel it
changing me.”

“What is it called?” the vicar permitted himself to ask.

“It is called ‘The Door.’”

“Why ‘The Door’?”

“Is there a Door still open for the human race?--that is the question
the poem asks.”

“A kind of mysticism, I presume?”

“I wish I could persuade you to read the poem. To my mind it has
exquisite beauty, and a profundity beyond anything I have ever read. It
asks a question which at this moment admits of no answer. Everything
hangs in the balance. But the theme of the poem is the future’s vital
need, the keeping open, at all costs, of the Door.”

Mr. Perry-Hennington shook his head sadly, but the gesture was not
without indulgence. He was ready to make allowance for Brandon’s
present state. The importance he attached to such lucubrations was
quite unworthy of an ex-Fellow of Gamaliel, at any rate in the eyes
of a former Fellow of All Saints, which under an old but convenient
dispensation Mr. Perry-Hennington could claim to be. This morbid
sensibility was a fruit of Brandon’s disease no doubt. But for his own
part the vicar had neither time nor inclination for what could only be
an ill-digested farrago of mystical moonshine. Unhappily nothing was
left to poor Brandon now except to ease his mind as best he could. Such
a mental condition was to be deplored. Yet the vicar fervently hoped
that the canker would not bite too deep.

“Do let me get the poem for you to read.” Brandon’s eyes were full of
entreaty.

“No, no, my dear fellow,” said the vicar gently. “I really haven’t time
to give to such things just now. All one’s energies are absorbed in
dealing with things as they are. I am quite prepared to take your word
that the poem has literary merit--after all, you are a better judge of
such matters than I am. But for those of us who have still our work
to do, this is not a moment for poetic fancies or any other form of
self-indulgence. Moreover, I must reserve my right to full liberty of
action in a matter which is causing me grave concern.”

With these words the vicar took a chastened leave. It was clear that
nothing was to be hoped for in this quarter. Bitterly disappointed, but
more than ever determined to do his duty in a matter which promised to
become increasingly difficult, the vicar shook Brandon gently by the
hand and left the room. In the large Tudor hall, with its stone flags,
old oak and rare tapestry, he came suddenly upon his niece.

Millicent Brandon looked too girlish to be the mother of the two lusty
creatures whom she was helping to fit together a picture puzzle which
had been spread out on a table. Tall, slight, a picture of vivid
health, she had a charming prettiness of an unusual kind. And in the
clear, long-lashed eyes was an eagerness, an intensity of life which
the elf-like Babs and the sturdy, yellow-headed Joskin shared with her.
Even the vicar, who noticed so little, was struck by the force of the
contrast between this rich vitality and the broken man whom he had left
a moment ago.

It was clear, however, that above Millicent Brandon’s high spirit
hovered the dark shadow which continually haunted her. Behind the
surface gayety was an anxiety which never slept, a gnawing fear that
no preoccupation could allay. The solid, sensible vicar was liked and
respected by women, and he now received the affectionate greeting of
his niece, who was genuinely pleased to see him. But her tone had much
solicitude.

“Well, Uncle Tom,” was her eager question, “what do you think of
Gervase?”

The vicar did not answer at once, but drew in his lips a little, in
the manner of a cautious physician with a reputation for absolute and
fearless honesty.

“He seems cheerful,” he said.

“Everybody thinks he keeps up in the most wonderful way. And do you
know, he has begun to read again? A fortnight ago he seemed hardly
able to bear the thought of a book; he couldn’t be got to look at a
newspaper or even to listen to one. But that is now a thing of the
past. All the old interest is coming back. Last night I read Pascal
to him for nearly an hour, and he followed it the whole time with the
closest attention.”

“I hope you had the doctor’s permission,” said the vicar with a frown.

“Oh, yes. Both Dr. Shrubb and Dr. Joliffe are very pleased. Dr. Shrubb
was here yesterday. He thinks it is the most hopeful sign we have yet
had.”

“I am very glad indeed to hear it,” said the vicar with a puzzled face.

“Of course he can promise nothing--absolutely nothing, but he thinks it
is a great thing for the mind to be aroused. A fortnight ago Gervase
couldn’t be induced to take an interest in anything. And now he listens
to Pascal and reads the _Times_.”

The vicar’s frown grew more perplexed. “And the doctors are pleased?”

“Oh, yes.”

“How do they account for the change?”

“They give no explanation, but I have a theory that in a sort of way
the person who is really responsible for it--I know you’ll laugh at
me--is that dear fellow, John Smith.”

“Oh, indeed,” said the vicar in a hard, dry voice.

“I know you don’t altogether approve of him, Uncle Tom, but he’s such
a charming, whimsical, gentle creature, just a little mad they seem to
think in the village, but Gervase has always made a friend of him.”

“So I understand.” The voice was that of a statesman; the frown was
growing portentous.

“Well, every day since Gervase came home the dear fellow has picked a
bunch of flowers on the common and brought them here. And every day he
has begged to see Gervase. A fortnight ago, when Gervase had been out
of his room twice, I decided that he might. I felt sure no harm could
come of it. So he came and it seems he talked to Gervase of a poem he
had written--I didn’t hear the conversation so I can’t throw much light
on it--but the next day he returned with the poem. And the amazing part
is that Gervase read it, and dating from then he seems to have found a
new interest in everything.”

“And you are inclined to attribute the change in the first place to the
effect of this man’s verses?”

“Yes. It seems a little absurd. But in my own mind I can’t help
thinking that the improvement is entirely due to John Smith.”

“Have you read these verses, by the way?”

“No. It’s quite a long poem, I believe, stanza upon stanza, but Gervase
returned it at once. Since its effect has been so remarkable I am
thinking of trying to get hold of it.”

“Doesn’t this strike you as very odd, that is, assuming your theory of
the poem’s effect upon a man like Gervase to be correct?”

“Yes, quite extraordinary. He was always so fastidious, a man to whom
only the best and highest appealed.”

“Quite so.” The vicar pursed his lips. “And it is a fact to look in the
face, my dear Millicent. As you know, I am a great believer in looking
facts in the face.”

“You think, Uncle Tom, it implies mental deterioration?”

“One hardly likes to say that,” said the vicar cautiously. “But that is
what we have to fear.”

A deepening anxiety crept into the eyes of the wife. “It does seem a
reasonable explanation. But please don’t forget that Gervase took no
interest in any subject until John Smith came, and that now he has
begun to read the Bible.”

“It is certainly remarkable if such is the case. By the way, do the
doctors allow him to read the Bible?”

“He may read anything.”

“And they consider him quite rational?”

“Perfectly rational.” Millicent looked at the vicar in some surprise.
“Don’t you, Uncle Tom?”

The vicar would have evaded the question had he been able to do so. But
with those candid eyes upon him that was impossible. Moreover, the old
habit of fearless honesty in all things did not permit a deliberate lie.

Millicent declined to accept his silence. “You don’t!” She pinned him
down to a reply.

“If the doctors are satisfied,” said the vicar slowly, “that is the
important thing. One doesn’t set up one’s opinion against theirs, you
know.”

But he was not to escape in that way.

“Evidently you don’t agree with them, Uncle Tom. Now I want you to be
perfectly frank and tell me just how you feel about Gervase.”

“Well, I will.” The vicar spoke slowly and weightily. “Since you press
the question, his whole outlook appears to me to be changing.”

“But not for the worse, surely?”

“That I cannot say. It is only my opinion and I give it for what it
is worth, but I don’t quite approve this change which is coming over
Gervase.”

“Didn’t you find him happy and cheerful?”

“I did. But that is not the point. My feeling is that if Gervase
were perfectly rational he would not attach so much importance to
the--er--lucubrations of this fellow, John Smith.”

“But Gervase has always been a great lover of poetry,” said the
surprised Millicent. “He took prizes for it at Eton, and at Oxford
he won a medal. His love of poetry is really nothing new; in fact he
passes for an expert on the subject.”

“That is my point. I have always shared that view of Gervase. In common
with the rest of the world, I have greatly admired his translations
from the Greek. But that being the case, the question one must now ask
oneself is, why does a man of sure taste, of real scholarship, suddenly
surrender his mind to the fantastic trivialities of a half-baked,
half-educated village loafer?”

“But you’ve not read the poem,” said Millicent with a little air of
triumph, in which, however, relief was uppermost.

“No good thing can come out of Babylon. It isn’t reasonable to expect
it. Why, I’ve known that fellow Smith nearly twenty years. I know
exactly what education he has had, I know his record.”

“I won’t venture to argue with you, Uncle Tom. Your opinion is worth so
much more than mine, but isn’t there such a thing as genius?”

“There may be. Although it is a thing I am rather skeptical about
myself; that is to say I regard it primarily as an infinite capacity
for taking pains, a natural fruit of learning and study. That is why to
my mind it is more _wholesome_ to believe that Bacon wrote Shakespeare.
Nay, it must have been so, for it is surely a rational canon that the
most highly trained mind of the age wrote Hamlet, Othello and King
Lear, rather than an inspired clodhopper who began life as a butcher’s
apprentice.”

“Well, Uncle Tom,” said his niece demurely, “of course I mustn’t argue
with you, but aren’t your views rather like those of a character in
a most amusing play I saw in London the other day? When a dramatic
critic was asked to criticize a play, he said, ‘How can one begin to
criticize a play until one knows the name of the author?’”

“Quite so, quite so,” said Mr. Perry-Hennington triumphantly. “A very
apt illustration of my point.”

“But it is also an illustration of mine. At least I hope it is.”

“Then I’m afraid we are arguing about entirely different things.”

“Well, Uncle Tom,” said the tenacious Millicent, “I am arguing about
what Gervase would call the peril of a priori judgments. It seems to
me that the Christian religion itself is a proof of it. How does your
theory account for the fact that Jesus was a village carpenter?”

The vicar drew up his long, thin, rather ascetic frame to the topmost
of its seventy-two inches. “My dear child,” he said solemnly, “my
theory accounts for that fact by simply assuming that Jesus was God
Himself. It is the only reasonable hypothesis. Without it there is no
such thing as the Christian religion.”

“But, Uncle Tom, to quote Gervase again, isn’t that the greatest of all
assumptions for a rational mind to make?”

“Undoubtedly, my dear. And it is only permitted to us to make it by the
implicit eye of faith.”

“Do you mean that the Incarnation is the only matter in which we are to
exercise faith?”

“Ah, now we are getting into theology.” Mr. Perry-Hennington took up
his niece with a little air of bland condescension. “You mustn’t bother
your pretty head about that. I must go now.” A pang shot through him
as he suddenly remembered the morrow’s sermon. “I must leave you, my
dear, to help the children put together their picture puzzle. Good-by.
Gervase is really quite as well as I had hoped to find him. Let us
continue to have faith.”

Thereupon the vicar tore himself away from a controversy in which he
felt he was showing, as usual, to singular advantage. He was so sure of
the ground on which he stood, that even poor Gervase’s highly trained
intellect, of which the callow, fluffy-headed Millicent was the merest
echo, was hardly able to meet him upon it. Moreover the vicar was a
born fighter, and the trend of the discussion with his niece had had
the effect of stirring in his mind the embers of a latent antagonism.
The truth was, Brandon had never been quite forgiven a _mot_ he had
once permitted himself. He had said that the Established Church was
determined to eat his cake and to have it: that is, it was reared on
the basis of two and two makes five, but ordered its conduct on the
basis of two and two makes four.

As the vicar left the inner hall he heard the voice of the curly-headed
Joskin uplifted in a wail: “Oh, mummy, _do_ come and help us! We can’t
fit it in. There’s a piece missing.”




VII


THE vicar remembered his sermon and looked at his watch. It was within
twenty minutes of luncheon; the most valuable morning of the week was
gone. The spirit of vexation rose in him again. It was all the fault
of this miserable fellow, John Smith. Two priceless hours had been
lavished on this wastrel, this dead charge on the community. Moreover
he would not be able to make up for lost time in the course of the
afternoon. At three o’clock he was due at Brombridge to attend the War
Economy Committee; at seven he had to take the chair at a recruiting
meeting at Grayfield, and dine afterward with his old Magdalen friend,
Whymper.

It cut him to the heart to forego the morrow’s sermon. He was the soul
of conscientiousness, and not since his attack of rheumatoid arthritis
nine years ago had he failed to come up to time on Sunday evening with
a brand new discourse. And if ever one was needed it was now. The
time cried aloud for pulpit direction. The government was conducting
the war in half-hearted fashion. It had not yet dared to bring in a
Conscription Bill, yet in Mr. Perry-Hennington’s opinion every man and
every woman in the country up to the age of sixty-five ought to have
been forcibly enlisted months ago. Several times already he had made
that proposal in the newspapers over his own signature, and it had been
greatly applauded by the only sort of people who counted in war time.

The hour was certainly ripe for a rasper in the way of a sermon. The
nation wanted “gingering up.” He must find time somehow to put his
ideas together against Sunday evening. As he strode with his long legs
down the glorious avenue of Hart’s Ghyll he felt braced and reënforced
with energy. Once more his thought began to flow. He had his text
at any rate, and it ought not to be difficult to strike something
compelling out of it. By the time the porter’s lodge was reached, he
had grown quite hopeful. Phrases, ideas, were filling his mind; perhaps
his morning had not been wholly wasted after all; it seemed to have
stirred him to something. “Let us put on the armor of light.” For the
vicar those words were a bugle call to the old Adam within. The spirit
of conflict, like a sleeping giant, sprang to new life.

Hardly had Mr. Perry-Hennington passed beyond the iron gates into the
village street, when a rather perspiring, decidedly genial-looking
man on a bicycle immediately recalled his pastoral duty to his mind.
Nay, it was more than that. The matter of John Smith had as much to do
with the state as the recruiting question, the economy question, the
supineness of the government, and the morrow’s sermon.

“Good-morning, Joliffe,” said the vicar in a hearty, detaining voice.
“The very man I want to see.”

“Nothing wrong at home I hope,” said the man on the bicycle, who
was the village doctor. He spoke in a simple, direct, unaffectedly
practical way, which all the same was not without a faint note of
deference, ever grateful to Mr. Perry-Hennington’s ear.

Dr. Joliffe slowed up and hopped from his bicycle.

“No, nothing of that kind I’m glad to say.” The vicar’s reply was
equally precise and to the point. “But I want to have a little talk
with you privately about a matter that is worrying me a good deal.”

“Very glad any time.” Dr. Joliffe looked at his watch. “Why not come
and take potluck with me now--if you are not afraid of Mrs. Small in
war time. She’s not up to your form at any time, but you are very
welcome to what we have.”

The vicar hesitated. He was expected at home, but John Smith was
burning a hole in his mind. He felt there must be no delay in taking
a man whom he could trust into his confidence, and if he lost this
present opportunity no other chance might arise for several days.

“You will?” said the practical Joliffe. “Although you’ll not expect
much. I’ll send my boy along to the vicarage to tell them not to wait
for you.”

Mr. Perry-Hennington allowed himself to be persuaded. Joliffe was the
only person in the place to whom he might turn for help; moreover he
was a discreet, unaffectedly honest man whom the vicar had always
instinctively trusted. And disconcerted as he was by Brandon’s attitude
in the matter, it was imperative that no time should be lost in taking
competent advice.

The doctor’s abode was a rather fine, small Georgian specimen, standing
back from the center of the village street. A widower and childless
in a house too large for his needs, a man of taste in furniture and
bric-a-brac, with a capital cellar and a good cigar for his friends,
he was also a man of private means to whom the neighboring villages
owed a great deal. He was such an excellent fellow, so widely and so
justly respected, that it was a little odd to find him tinged with the
national vice of servility. But with all his great merits he sometimes
found it rather hard to forget that he belonged to the middle class
and that the vicar belonged to the aristocracy. It may have been for
that reason that Mr. Perry-Hennington felt so much confidence in his
judgment. At any rate, the satisfying sense that Joliffe was aware
of the deference due to a peer’s brother oiled the wheels of their
intercourse, and enabled the vicar to treat him with a bonhomie which
he knew would not be abused.

Mrs. Small had only a cottage pie and a pancake to offer the august
visitor, but in spite of the King’s edict, to which the host
apologetically referred, this fare was eked out by a very honest glass
of brown sherry, a cup of coffee that did Mrs. Small great credit, and
a really excellent cigar.

Both gentlemen were due at Brombridge at three, to which center of
activity the doctor proposed to drive the vicar in his runabout. This
suited the vicar very well. He would be there and back in half the time
required by his gig. And old Alice, who was rising twenty-four, would
be able to save herself for the evening journey to Grayfield, which old
Alice’s master, fully conscious that “the old girl was not what she had
been,” and a humane man to boot, had been inclined to view with some
little concern. Things were turning out for the best in the mundane
sphere at any rate, and the vicar was not unpleasantly aware of this
fact as, after-luncheon cigar alight, he entered upon the incidental
cause of a modest but agreeable meal to which he had done perhaps
rather better justice than the state of his emotions justified.

“Joliffe,” said the vicar, taking a long and impressive pull at his
cigar, “what I really want to talk to you about is that fellow John
Smith. I am sorry to say I’ve come to the conclusion that he can no
longer be allowed to stay in the parish.”

“Indeed,” said the doctor casually. “A harmless sort of creature I’ve
always thought. Doesn’t quite know himself perhaps. A little too
free with his opinions may be, but strictly between ourselves”--Dr.
Joliffe’s voice grew respectfully confidential--“I think we may lay
that to the door of someone else.”

“Brandon, eh? I agree.” The vicar grew magisterial. “Always an
injudicious fellow. That’s the worst of your radical. Gives these
intermediate sort of people ideas.”

“Quite so. I wish you’d try the brandy.” The host pushed it across.

“No. Really. War time, you know.”

“I should value your opinion. Just half a glass.”

“Well, half a glass. To return to John Smith. Excellent brandy. My
girl, Edith, presented this fellow Smith with a white feather this
morning. Of course he’s a poor half-begotten sort of creature, but as
far as one can see there’s no reason why he shouldn’t be working at
munitions instead of loafing about the common.”

“Exactly. Sure you won’t have a _leetle_ more?”

“Quite. Well, if you please, he kissed the feather, stuck it in his
buttonhole, and said, ‘And lo, the heavens were opened unto him, and he
saw the Spirit of God descending like a dove, and lighting upon him.’”

The doctor shook a grave, gray head. “Sounds decidedly cracked, I
must say. At any rate a most improper speech to make to a clergyman’s
daughter.”

“I should think so! Outrageous blasphemy!”

“Do you suppose the chap meant to insult her?”

“If he didn’t, and it’s charitable to give him the benefit of the
doubt, his behavior only admits of one other explanation.”

Dr. Joliffe sat, a picture of perplexity. To a severely literal mind
the speech was meaningless. He had known for some time that the man
claimed to see visions, that he was a poet and a dreamer; and the
doctor had lately heard rumors, to which he had paid little attention,
that the man was dabbling in Christian Science in neighboring villages;
but this was the first time it had occurred to him that the fellow was
insane. But now the doctor agreed with the vicar that such behavior
strongly suggested that condition.

“Mind you, that is not all.” And the vicar gave an account of his own
visit to the common, his conversation with the man, his subsequent
visit to the mother and the remarkable statement she had made to him.

“She has always been very religious,” said the doctor, “but up till now
I have not questioned her sanity.”

“Nor I,” said the vicar. “But she is not important. She is practically
bed-ridden. It is this son of hers we have to think about. I have
already made up my mind that he must go. And that being the case, the
problem arises as to what is the best means of getting rid of him.”

Dr. Joliffe, a worldly-wise man within his sphere, stroked his chin
solemnly but offered no advice.

“Of course,” said the vicar, “it is in the public interest that
whatever steps we may take should not excite attention. It is
sufficiently disagreeable to have that sort of lunatic in one’s
parish, without having busybodies and maliciously inclined people
making a fuss. The readiest and simplest means, no doubt, would be
to institute a prosecution for blasphemy. He would most certainly be
detained during his Majesty’s pleasure. But such a proceeding might
play into the hands of the enemies of the Established Church, in which,
unfortunately, the country seems to abound. We might have Voltaires
arising in the Cocoa Press or something equally revolting.”

“Quite so, vicar.” Dr. Joliffe compressed his lips. “You’ll be wise to
go slow in a matter of this kind, believe me, or you might easily find
public opinion against you.”

“As though one cared _that_ for public opinion.” The vicar snapped
heroic fingers. “Still, I see your point. And broadly speaking, I agree
with it. Now to pass to the second alternative. The man said to me--let
me give his precise words if I can--‘At two o’clock this morning a
presence entered my room and said, ”I am Goethe and I have come to pray
for Germany.” And I answered him, “Certainly I shall be very glad to
pray for Germany,” and we knelt and prayed together; and then he arose
and I embraced him and he showed me the little town with its gables
and turrets where he sleeps at night and then he left me, promising to
return.’”

“Perfectly preposterous,” said the doctor. “I quite agree that the man
ought to be locked up. But of course he doesn’t intend to be taken
literally. Obviously it is his idea of a poetic fancy.”

“No doubt. But a man must be taught to curb such poetic fancies in a
time like the present. Now the point which arises”--the vicar raised
a dogmatic forefinger--“is that a person who makes such statements
in public renders himself amenable to the Defense of the Realm
Regulations. And there is no doubt that any bench of magistrates that
knew its business would know how to deal with him.”

“Personally, I’m not altogether clear that they would,” said Dr.
Joliffe cautiously. “I agree with you, of course, that a man who talks
in that way needs a strait waistcoat--one wonders what would happen to
a man in Germany who went about saying he was praying for England! At
the same time one ought not to forget that nowadays even the county
bench is not composed exclusively of people as clear-sighted as you and
I.”

“That is so, I am afraid. Even the county bench is getting fearfully
mixed. Timson, the Brombridge grocer, is the latest addition, by
the way. But I see your point. In such an absurd country as this
one couldn’t depend on the man being dealt with in the way that
he deserves. That’s where the enemy with its wonderful internal
administration has such an advantage. Their system has much to
recommend it in war time--or in any other if it comes to that.”

Dr. Joliffe agreed. “We have much to learn from them in the handling of
the masses.”

“Ah, well, Joliffe,” said the vicar hopefully, “we shall learn many
things if this war goes on long enough.”

“I am convinced that the only way to down Prussia is to adopt Prussia’s
methods.”

“However,” said the vicar briskly, “we have not come to them yet.
Therefore we can’t rely on the county bench doing its duty in the
matter, although I hate having to say so. And that brings us to
alternative the third, which is, Joliffe, that this man, John Smith,
must be put away privately--for the good of the community.”

This taking of the bull by the horns was followed by a pause
on the part of the doctor. He was an admirer of the vicar’s
thorough-goingness, he was in full sympathy with the main premises
of his argument, but he was a conscientious man. And he had a clear
perception of the difficulties inherent in the process of confining a
lunatic.

At last Dr. Joliffe broke a dubious silence. “To begin with, vicar, you
will have to get two doctors to certify the chap insane, and then you
will have to get two magistrates to sign a warrant for his removal.”

“I know that,” said the vicar. “And I am fully prepared to do it. But
to begin with, Joliffe, I must have your help in the matter.”

“I am willing to give it of course. It’s one’s duty.”

“Then I shall ask you to certify him at once.”

Dr. Joliffe hesitated. A cloud of indecision came on his face. “Before
I do that,” he said very slowly, “I should like the opinion of someone
who has more knowledge of mental disease than I pretend to.”

“But, my dear fellow,” said the vicar rather surprisedly, “after what I
have told you aren’t you already convinced that the fellow is insane?”

“Insanity is a complicated subject,” said the cautious Joliffe. “A very
much more complicated subject than the layman appreciates.”

The vicar, at heart an autocrat, began to bristle at once. Scenting
contradiction in the quarter where he had least expected to find it, he
grew suddenly impatient. “But even a layman knows,” he said in a tone
of authority, “that insanity on one point is insanity on all.”

“Just so.”

“Well, that is already proved.”

“I shall not gainsay it. But a general practitioner is naturally
cautious--it is his duty to be so--in a matter of this kind. Let me
suggest that we have the opinion of a mental specialist before we
commit ourselves to any line of action.”

In the opinion of Mr. Perry-Hennington this was perilously like a
display of moral cowardice, but from a purely professional standpoint
it might not be unreasonable. All the mental specialists of Harley
Street would not alter the fact that the man was insane--it was the
only charitable assumption. At the same time, Joliffe’s request was
quite easy to understand.

“By all means.” The vicar’s tone of assent implied that he had to deal
with a timid fellow. “We’ll consult anyone you please. Of course, only
one opinion is possible, but if you feel it will help and strengthen
you in your duty don’t let us hesitate. By all means let us have
someone down at once.”

“I am sure it is the proper course to take.”

“Very well. Who shall it be? Not necessarily a man in the first flight
who will want a large fee, which I’m afraid will have to come out of
my pocket instead of out of the Treasury. Not that I shall grudge
it, whatever it may be. Still, the case is so clear that somebody
local, such a man as Parker of Brombridge, will not have the slightest
difficulty in certifying him.” The vicar gazed fixedly at Joliffe.
“Yes--shall we say Parker? He’ll be at the meeting this afternoon. I’ll
speak to him. We ought to move without delay. The fellow ought not
to be at large a day longer than we can help. Yes--Dr. Parker--this
afternoon. Get him over on Monday. And this evening I’m dining with
Whymper and Lady Jane--I’ll mention it to Whymper. All to the good to
get the local bench interested without delay.”

Dr. Joliffe nodded. But somehow he looked a little dubious.

“I think, Mr. Perry-Hennington,” he said rather uneasily, “we ought to
be very careful to satisfy ourselves that it is a bona fide case of
paranoia.”

“Certainly, certainly. I fully agree.”

“I’ve no objection to meeting Parker, of course, but I should welcome a
London opinion if it is possible to arrange for one. You see, this is
rather a serious matter.”

The vicar thought so too. “But personally, I have every confidence in
Parker’s judgment. I remember some years ago when my eldest boy George
had a murrain, Parker diagnosed it at once as a case of measles. I’ve
always found him quite sound personally.”

“I’ve not a word to say against him, I cast no doubt upon his
competence, but this is one of those delicate things which it hardly
seems right, if you’ll excuse my saying so, to leave entirely to local
practitioners whose experience must necessarily be limited.”

“Joliffe, I hope you are not hedging,” said the vicar sternly.

“No, I am not hedging. But, as I say, this is a ticklish matter.”

The vicar shook a pontifical head. “For the life of me,” he said, “I
can’t see that it is more ticklish than any other matter. Had there
been a doubt in the case one might have thought so. But the man is
as mad as a hatter. A child could tell that who heard him talk as he
talked to me this morning on the common.”

“No doubt you are right. But he has not yet aired these particular
views to me, you know.”

“Then you’ve evidently not talked to him on his particular subject.”

“Evidently not.”

“Wait till you do, my friend! In the meantime I’ll mention the matter
to Parker at the meeting and get him over on Monday to see him.”

Further conversation on the thorny subject was forbidden for the time
being by the reappearance of Mrs. Small, who had to inform her master
that the boy was round with the car. Thereupon Dr. Joliffe looked at
his watch and declared that they must start at once if they were to be
at Brombridge by three.




VIII


THE timed journey to Brombridge in the doctor’s runabout was forty
minutes with reasonable driving. On the way both gentlemen were
rather silent. By tacit consent John Smith was dismissed for the time
being, and they were able to confine themselves to the prospect for
potatoes, war in its relation to agriculture, the loss of tonnage, and
hearty abuse of the government. For the true Briton, that unfortunate
institution vies with that equally unfortunate institution, the
weather, in supplying the theme of a never-ending jeremiad. All worthy
of their salt, irrespective of creed or party, damn these miserable
makeshifts impartially. At the moment the vicar and the doctor drove up
to the Assembly Rooms, Brombridge, they were in cordial agreement that
only one thing under divine providence could hope to make the British
people lose the war, and that thing was the British Government.

By a graceful little act on the part of coincidence--most charming of
the minor goddesses!--Dr. Parker was about to ascend the steps of the
building just as the car of Dr. Joliffe drew up by the curb. The vicar
hailed the leading physician of Brombridge promptly and heartily.

“The very man we want to see.” Mr. Perry-Hennington was one of the
fortunate people who act first and do their thinking afterward.

Dr. Parker, an elderly, florid, bewhiskered, important-looking
personage, stopped at once, turned about and gave the reverend
gentleman the full benefit of his politest smile and his best
bow. He then let his eyes pass to the second occupant of the car,
fully prepared to let them infold a county magnate. Somehow Mr.
Perry-Hennington always contrived to dispense an atmosphere of
county magnates, or at least to live in the odor of their sanctity.
But as soon as Dr. Parker saw who it was who had had the honor of
conveying the vicar of Penfold to the meeting the polite smile and
the ceremonious bow were merged almost magically in a brief nod and a
gesture bearing a perilous resemblance to a scowl.

The truth was, Dr. Parker had a poor opinion of Dr. Joliffe, and Dr.
Joliffe had a poor opinion of Dr. Parker. If pressed upon the point,
Dr. Parker would solemnly confess that Dr. Joliffe was the biggest
tufthunter in Kent, and Dr. Joliffe, also under duress, would return
that singularly comprehensive compliment.

This was perhaps a pity. Both were good men, both were honest men, but
like so many people, otherwise quite admirable, their sense of vision
was not acute. Nodosities of character in their neighbors were apt
to overshadow the central merit. In this case it was not so much a
question of professional jealousy as a matter of social rivalry. The
root of the trouble was that Dr. Joliffe and Dr. Parker were a little
too much alike.

Dr. Parker was clearly gratified at being the very man whom the vicar
of Penfold wanted to see, but carefully dissembled his feelings while
Mr. Perry-Hennington stepped out of the car and buttonholed him rather
ostentatiously on the steps of the council chamber. The vicar had to
suggest that they should hold a little conference after the meeting
in regard to a matter of importance. Certainly they were not in a
position to hold it at the moment. Fellow members of the War Economy
Committee were rolling up in surprising numbers; weird old landowners
in wonderful vehicles, local J. P.’s, retired stockbrokers, civil
servants, city men, and very _affairé_ ladies.

For all of these the parson of Penfold had a greeting. With his tall,
thin, aristocratic figure, his distinguished air, his large, fleshy,
important nose, he was the kind of man who dominates every company he
enters. And it was so entirely natural to him to do so that no one ever
thought of resenting it. He was not a clever man, a witty man, nor
was tact his long suit, moreover he was apt to give himself airs, but
for some reason or combination of reasons, he was greatly respected,
generally looked up to and almost universally popular. He seemed to
carry equal weight at Gleave Castle, the Mount Olympus of the local
cosmos, and at the board of guardians. The acid people who dissect
our naïve and charming human nature might have said that it was for
no better reason than that the vicar of Penfold was a born busybody,
doubly blessed with a loud voice, and a total absence of humor, but
the good and the credulous who take things on trust and form a working
majority in every republic always declared “it was because he was such
a gentleman.”

By sheer pressure of human character, Mr. Perry-Hennington took a seat
next the chairman of the meeting in the council chamber. And when
that almost incredibly distinguished personage, a rather pathetic and
extremely inaudible old thing in red mittens, got on to his legs, the
vicar of Penfold could be heard rendering him very audible assistance
in the course of his opening remarks. But it seemed entirely right and
proper that it should be so. And nobody resented it, not even the old
boy in the red mittens, who had retired from county business years ago,
but who, as the master of Gleave, was fully determined to do his bit
toward winning the war like everybody else.

The Clerk of the Committee, a rising Brombridge solicitor, had to
submit to correction from the parson of Penfold, once when the Clerk
was entirely in the right, once when he may have been wrong, but on a
point so delicate that ordinary people would never have noticed it,
and even if they had would hardly have thought it worth while to hold
up the tide of human affairs in order to discuss it. Still, it was Mr.
Perry-Hennington’s way and ordinary people admired it. Even Lady Jane
Whymper, who was very far from being an ordinary person, and who was
seated at the other side of the Chairman, admired it. The vicar of
Penfold was such a dear man and he got things done.

This afternoon, however, the War Economy Committee would have
transacted the same amount of business in at least twenty minutes
less time had the vicar of Penfold been in the seclusion of his study
grappling with his sermon. Still, that didn’t occur to anybody; and it
would have been ungenerous to harbor the thought. The vicar of Penfold
was an acknowledged ornament of any assembly he chose to enter and no
gathering of this kind could have been complete without him. Everybody
was amazingly in earnest, but Mr. Perry-Hennington was the most earnest
of all. He made a number of suggestions, not one of which, after
discussion, the Committee felt able to adopt, but the general effect of
his presence was to give an air of life and virility to the proceedings.

After the meeting, the vicar staved off Lady Jane, with whom he
had promised to dine that evening, and tactfully withdrew from the
distinguished circle around the chairman in order to confer with Dr.
Parker at the other end of the long table.

Dr. Parker, if rather flattered by this attention, was also a little
perplexed by it. For one thing, Dr. Joliffe was scowling at him from
the other end of the room. So little love was lost between these
warriors that they never met in consultation if they could possibly
help it. The vicar, however, had quite made up his mind that they
should meet on Monday. He declined to give details, but maintained an
air of reticence and mystery; yet he dropped a final hint that the
matter was of immense importance, not merely to individuals but to the
state.

Dr. Parker, having mounted gold eyeglasses and consulted his diary,
consented in his dignified way to lunch at the vicarage on Monday.
Thereupon Mr. Perry-Hennington thanked him with equal dignity and
returned to Penfold in Dr. Joliffe’s car.




IX


NOT altogether pleased with the turn of events, Dr. Joliffe drove the
vicar home. He was a conscientious man, and he had no more confidence
in “that fool Parker,” than Dr. Parker had in “that fool Joliffe.”
Still, the vicar could not be expected to know that. On the way back to
Penfold he was inclined to congratulate himself. Machinery had been set
in motion which could hardly fail to deal effectively with John Smith.

Dr. Joliffe was gloomy. All the way home he confined himself to polite
monosyllables, and kept his eyes glued to the steering wheel of the
car. Hitherto he had not had occasion to question the sanity of John
Smith, whom he had always regarded as a particularly harmless creature.
And even if the vicar had reported the man correctly, Dr. Joliffe was
by no means clear that Mr. Perry-Hennington was not taking an extreme
view of his duty.

The vicar, however, had not a doubt in the matter. A sermon unprepared
still cast its shadow over him, but a cloud had lifted from his mind. A
sanguine man endowed with great animal energy, he never questioned the
logic of his own views, the soundness of his judgment, or the absolute
rectitude of his conduct. It was in the interests of the community that
John Smith should be taken care of. It even gave the vicar a certain
satisfaction that his duty in a most disagreeable matter should now
stand out so clearly before him.

Mr. Perry-Hennington had only just time to drink a cup of tea at
the vicarage before he was off on his travels again. This time his
objective was Grayfield, a feudal sort of hamlet over on the Sussex
side. He had to speak at a recruiting meeting, arranged by his old
Magdalen friend Whymper, with whom a distinguished member of parliament
was spending the weekend.

Edith accompanied her father in the gig; and they had been invited to
dine at the manor after the meeting. Grayfield was a good hour for old
Alice, upon whom Anno Domini had set an unmistakable seal. But it was
a rare evening for a drive. The sweet, clean air of the Sussex uplands
was like a mellow wine; the road was straight and firm; the sun of June
still lingered over Ashdown; trees and hedges wore a sheen of glory,
with a trim farm or a cowled oasthouse nestling here and there. This
calm and quiet land with its mathematically parceled acres, its placid
cows and horses looking over five-barred gates to watch the stately
progress of old Alice, its occasional forelock-pulling rustic, was
like a “set” in a theater. The whole scene was so snug, so perfect, so
ordained, that nature appeared to have very little part to play in it.

“Odd to think that Armageddon is _here_,” said the vicar.

Edith thought it was, very.

The vicar gave a shake of the reins to encourage old Alice. And then he
said: “It’s my firm belief that there are people on this countryside
who don’t realize it even yet.”

“I’m sure there are,” said Edith.

“It will be brought home to every man, every woman, every child in the
land before we are through with it.”

“You think so?” said Edith, in the curious, precise voice she had
inherited from the Henningtons. “Personally I am not so sure. We are
much too secure here. I sometimes think that an invasion would be the
best thing that could happen to us.”

“I am inclined to agree with you,” said her father, with another shake
for old Alice. “But it’s gradually coming home to the nation. Rather
than give in we shall fight to the last man and the last shilling, and
unless they have altered since the days of Frederick the Great they
will do the same.”

“But it can’t go on indefinitely. It means extermination.”

“The end of civilization at any rate,” said the vicar mournfully. “The
clock has already been put back a century.”

“Sooner or later something must surely happen.”

“But what can happen? We don’t begin to look like downing them, and
it’s unthinkable that they can down us.”

“There’s God,” said Edith, in a voice of sudden, throbbing softness.
“I’m convinced that He must put an end to it soon.”

Before the vicar continued the conversation he gave Alice a little
touch of the whip.

“Have you ever thought, my dear girl, what an awful weight of sin there
is upon the human race? Instead of expecting God to put an end to it
soon, it will be little short of miraculous if He ever puts an end to
it at all.”

“But think of the awful suffering which falls for the most part on
those who are the least to blame.”

“There is Biblical precedent for all that has happened, nay for far
more than has happened. It is a judgment on the world, and the
innocent have to suffer with the guilty.”

Edith was silent a little while.

“It all seems so horribly unfair,” she said at last, in a deep,
palpitating tone which the vicar had not heard her use before. “It is
not the people who have made the war who are really suffering by it.”

“They who question!” and the vicar shook up old Alice yet again.

A long silence followed, through which old Alice jogged in her placid
way. Hardly a ripple stirred the evening air. It was very difficult to
realize what was happening within a hundred miles.

“I can’t help thinking of that man,” Edith suddenly remarked.

“What man?” said her father. For the moment his thoughts were far away.
An unwritten sermon was looming up at the back of his brain.

“John Smith. I can’t tell you what a curious impression he has left
upon me. Somehow I have done nothing but think of him ever since the
thing happened.”

It was a wrench for the vicar to quit the sequence of ideas which
was being formed so painfully in his mind. And for the time he had
had quite enough of the subject of John Smith, nay, was in process
of suffering a reaction from it. Besides it was such a vexatiously
disagreeable matter that he had no wish to discuss it more than was
absolutely necessary.

“I should forget the man if I were you,” was his counsel to Edith.

“Somehow I can’t. He’s made a most curious impression upon me. I begin
to feel now that I had no right to take for granted that what he said
was meant for blasphemy.”

The vicar dissented forcibly. “There can be no possible excuse for
him. It was a most improper remark for any man to make in such
circumstances, and you were quite right to feel as you did about it.
But if you are wise you will now put it out of your mind; at the
same time I should like you to give up the practice of distributing
feathers.”

“Yes, father, I will,” said Edith with a quick flush.

“You will be wise. I am arranging for an inquiry to be made into the
man’s mental condition.”

“Is that absolutely necessary?” The flush grew deeper.

“The public interest calls for it. This incident is a climax of many.”

“Yet somehow he doesn’t seem exactly insane.”

“Not even when he talks in that way?” said the vicar surprisedly. “My
dear girl, it is the only charitable explanation.”

“Do you really think so?” said the reluctant Edith.

“Demonstrably.”

“And yet somehow, when one really thinks about him, he seems so sweetly
reasonable.”

“Sweetly reasonable!” The vicar pinned down the unfortunate phrase.
“How can you say that? A mild and harmless creature, perhaps--apart
from his opinions--but reasonable!--surely that is the very last word
to apply to him.”

Perplexity deepened upon Edith’s face. “Somehow, I can’t throw off the
curious impression he has left upon me.”

“Try to forget the man.” The vicar spoke sternly.

“Dismiss him from your thoughts, at any rate while the case is _sub
judice_. You have done your duty by reporting the matter to me, and I
am doing mine by putting in motion proper machinery to deal with it.”

“I sincerely hope that nothing is going to happen to him.”

“He will be sent to an asylum.”

Edith shivered. “Oh, I hope not,” she said, drawing in her breath
sharply. “To my mind that is the cruellest fate that can overtake any
human being.”

“One doesn’t altogether agree,” said the vicar. “He will be taken
care of as he ought to be, and treated, of course, with the greatest
humanity. You must remember that asylums are very different places
from what they were sixty years ago, when Dickens--I think it was
Dickens--wrote about them.”

“But it must mean dreadful suffering to be held for the rest of one’s
life within four walls among lunatics without hope of escape.”

“Why should it, if the mind is really unsound? You must remember that
such people don’t suffer in the way that rational people do.”

“But suppose he doesn’t happen to be insane?”

“If he doesn’t happen to be insane the law cannot confine him as a
lunatic.”

“Who will decide?”

“He will be certified by two doctors.”

Again came silence, only broken by the peaceful plodding of old Alice.
And then said Edith suddenly: “Father, whoever certifies John Smith
will take an awful responsibility upon himself.”

“No doubt,” said the vicar. “Yet hardly so grave a one as you might
think. It is the only right, reasonable and charitable view to take of
him. And if the medical profession cannot be brought to do its clear
and obvious duty, the man will have to be dealt with in some other and
less gentle way.”

“I am beginning to wish I hadn’t spoken of the matter,” said Edith, in
an anxious tone.

“My dear,” said the vicar, shaking up old Alice, “in mentioning it,
disagreeable and distressing as it may be, you did no more than your
duty. You must now leave other people to do theirs, and at the same
time you must have the good sense to dismiss the matter entirely from
your thoughts.”

Again Edith shivered. But further discussion was forbidden by their
journey’s end. They had now reached the outskirts of Grayfield, and the
gates of the manor were before them.




X


THERE was a very stimulating meeting in the parish room. The squire of
Grayfield, the vicar’s Magdalen friend, Whymper, was by divine right
in the chair. He was a dry, melancholy, exanimate sort of creature; a
man of few words and very pronounced dislikes, not without force in a
narrow way, but locally of more account as the husband of Lady Jane
than from any native quality. Still, he made an excellent chairman.
Brief, concise, self-effacing, he loathed his job; anything in the
nature of speechifying bored him extremely, and he had a rooted
objection “to making an ass of himself in public,” but natural grit and
a high sense of duty pulled him through. In fact he did his job so well
that it would have been hard for any man to improve on his performance.

There were only two speakers. One was the vicar of Penfold, but he
was not the person who had filled the parish room to overflowing. A
famous member of Parliament, a reputed master of the forensic arts, was
spending a week-end at the manor house, and he had kindly consented to
rouse the young men of the district.

This paladin, who spoke before the vicar, was a tall thin-faced man of
forty-five, who hardly looked his age. George Speke by name, he was the
kind of man no British government is ever without, and he discoursed
the commonest of common sense with an air of ease and authenticity.
He put the case for Britain and her allies with a force and a cogency
that none could gainsay. And in that room at any rate, there was not
the slightest wish to gainsay it. Even the group of young men at the
back of the room, upon whom the local constable and two specials
kept a vigilant eye, and to whom Mr. Speke’s remarks were addressed
officially, showed no inclination to traverse his clear statement of
historical fact. It was a very finished effort, and somehow it moved
his audience.

Mr. Perry-Hennington came rather in the nature of an anticlimax. He had
no pretensions to be considered an orator, as he was careful to warn
his hearers at the outset; he had nothing to say that had not already
been said far better in print, yet he felt it to be his duty to stand
on a public platform and declaim obvious truths which the newspapers of
the realm had weeks ago made banal and threadbare. But somehow there
was a driving force, a contained ferocity about Mr. Perry-Hennington’s
sincerity, trite and ill-phrased as it was, which, with the aid of
copious “hear, hear’s” from Mr. Speke and his old Magdalen friend,
Whymper, first staved off an epidemic of coughing and then of
feet-shuffling, and then of coughing again. At last he got fairly into
his stride, a strong, unmusical voice increasing in violence as he did
so. And as the more violent he grew the more his audience approved,
they soon began to march together toward a thrilling climax. Finally
he swung into his fine peroration: “We shall not lay down the sword,
etc.,” which belonged to another, and ended stronger than he began
amidst quite a storm of cheering.

It was a mediocre performance, well within the range of any member of
the educated classes, yet all who heard it seemed greatly impressed.
Even Mr. Whymper and Mr. Speke seemed greatly impressed, and what was
of still more importance it went home to a number of young men at the
back of the room. When the meeting was over these came forward to the
table at the side of the platform, at which a recruiting officer sat,
and gave in their names. Nowhere else could such a scene have been
enacted. To the ordinary intelligence, it was almost unbelievable
that magnificent fellows in the pride of manhood could be moved to
the supreme sacrifice by the jejune lucidities of Mr. Speke, and
the brand of spirituality that the vicar of Penfold had to offer.
Something must have been in the air of that overheated room. Behind the
trite phrases, behind the rather otiose pomposities of the one, the
deliberately quiet, over-varnished style of the other, must have been
that spirit which, by hardly more than the breadth of a single hair,
had temporarily saved civilization for mankind.




XI


AFTER the meeting, eight people sat down to dinner at the manor house.
These were Mr. Speke, Mr. Perry-Hennington and his daughter, the host,
the redoubtable hostess, and three rather crushed and colorless Miss
Whympers, who were evidently in great awe of their mother.

Lady Jane Whymper was a large, humorless woman, a local terror, whom
most people found it very hard to like. For one thing her connections
were so high, and her family so good, that she never had to please or
conciliate anyone, and there was nothing in her nature to lead her to
do so. She gave so little thought to the feelings of others, that she
always made a point of saying just what came into her head, without
regard to time or place or company; moreover it was always said in a
voice of an exasperatingly penetrative quality. In her little corner of
the world there was no one to stand against her, therefore she could
hector, trample and dogmatize to her heart’s content. And being a
person with many social strings to pull, in London also she was able
to order the world pretty much to her own liking.

Still even she, if as a general rule she was insufferable, kept a
reserve of tact for special occasions. By no means a fool, she could
sometimes rise to graciousness; and the knowledge that violence was
thereby done to the order of her nature seemed to invest her hours
of charm with greater significance. And this evening at dinner, she
happened to be in her most winning mood. For one thing George Speke was
a favorite of hers; she had also a regard for the vicar of Penfold;
thus the augurs had doubly blessed the meal. It was true that Lady
Jane reserved her unbendings for the other sex, certainly never for
her own, unless she had some very portentous ax to grind; but on the
present occasion the three Miss Whympers and their rather mournful and
ineffectual sire found the evening much more agreeable than usual.

Speke was a favorite of Lady Jane’s for several reasons. To begin
with, like herself he was highly connected. It may seem an anachronism
that in the year 1915 a woman of the world should attach the slightest
importance to such a fortuitous matter, but even at that time a type
of mind still survived in the island to which degrees of birth were of
vast consequence. Lady Jane owned a mind of that sort. Dear George was
“next in” for a dukedom, and Lady Jane was a duke’s daughter.

Ducal aspect apart, Speke was an able and likable fellow. He had once
been described by one who knew the world as a member of a first-rate
second-rate family. The Spekes had always been “in it” ever since
they had been a family; they ran to prime ministers, field marshals,
ambassadors, archbishops, all down the scroll of history. George’s
particular blend of Speke was an immensely distinguished clan;
yet somehow when Clio, the muse, cast her searchlight upon their
achievements they loomed far less in the eyes of posterity than in
those of their own generation. Ten years before, Mr. Speke’s own little
world of friends, relations and sconce bearers, had seen in him a
future prime minister. But 1914 had modified their views. All the same
a place had been found for him in the Coalition. As Lady Jane said, “We
cannot hope to win the war without him.”

Speke had no such estimate of his own abilities, or at least, if he
had, he knew how to conceal it. He talked modestly and well at the
dinner table; his conversation was full of inside knowledge, and it had
a grace of manner which Edith and the three Miss Whympers admired. He
had met the vicar of Penfold before, and rather liked and respected him
as most people did; also he claimed him as a distant kinsman, as the
Perrys of Molesworth appeared in the Speke family tree.

“By the way, Mr. Perry-Hennington,” he said, “I was trespassing in your
parish this afternoon. I went to see Gervase Brandon.”

“Poor fellow,” said the vicar. “But don’t you think he is bearing up
remarkably?”

“Quite wonderfully. But he’s a pathetic figure. Six months ago when I
saw him last, he was at the apex of mental and bodily power. And now he
lies helpless, never expecting to walk again.”

“And yet not a word of complaint,” said the vicar. “This morning when
I went to see him I was greatly struck by his splendid courage and
cheerfulness.”

“Truly a hero--and so pathetic as he lies in that room--a wonderful
room it is--among his books.”

“Can nothing be done for him?” said Lady Jane.

“The doctors are beginning to despair,” said the vicar. “Everything
that medical science can do has been done already, and there’s no sign
of an improvement.”

“The higher nerve centers, I suppose?”

“So I understand. The mere concussion of this modern artillery is
appalling.”

“It is amazing to me that the human frame ever succeeds in adapting
itself to war under modern conditions,” said Speke.

“And the awful thing is,” the host interposed in his melancholy tones,
“that there appears to be no limit to what can be done in the way of
self-immolation. The chemist and the inventor have only to go on long
enough applying their arts to war to evolve conditions which will
destroy the whole human race. We live in a time of horrors, but let us
ask ourselves what the world will be twenty years hence?”

“Don’t, I implore you, Edward,” reproved his wife. “Spare us the
thought.”

“No, it won’t bear speaking about,” said Speke. “We are already past
the point where science destroys organic life faster than nature can
replace.”

“Not a doubt of it,” said the vicar. “And if we cannot find a means
of bridging permanently the chasm that has opened in the life of
civilization, the globe will cease to be habitable for the human race.”

“Really! really!” said the hostess.

“Only too true,” said the host. “There’s hardly a limit to what modern
devilry can do. Take aviation to begin with. We are merely on the
threshold of the subject.”

“I agree,” said George Speke. “The other day, Bellman, the air
minister, told me it is quite within the bounds of possibility to drop
a poison from the clouds that will exterminate whole cities.”

“Which merely goes to prove what I have always contended,” said the
hostess. “Sooner or later all nations will be forced into an agreement
for the abolition of war.”

“My dear Lady Jane,” said the vicar, shaking a mournful head, “such
a contingency is against all experience. It is not to be thought of
unless a fundamental change takes place in the heart of man.”

“A change must take place,” said Lady Jane, “if the human race is to
go on. Besides, doesn’t the Bible tell us that there will be a second
coming of Christ, and that all wars will cease?”

“It does,” said the vicar; “but that is the millennium, you know. And I
am bound to say there’s no sign of it at present. I am convinced that
only one thing now can save the human race and that is a second advent.
Only that can bridge the chasm which has opened in the life of the
nations.”

“In the meantime,” said George Speke, “the watchers scan the heavens
in vain. The miserable, childish futility of our present phase of
evolution! So many little groups of brown grubs slaving night and day
to make human life a worse hell than nature has made of it already.
People talk of the exhilaration of war. Good God! they can’t have seen
it. They can’t have seen colonies of organized hatreds, profaning all
art and all science, poisoning the very air God gave us to breathe.
It makes one loathe one’s species. We are little, hideous, two-legged
ants, flying around in foul contraptions of our own invention. And to
what end? Simply to destroy.”

“In order to recreate,” said the vicar robustly.

“I don’t believe it. The pendulum of progress--blessed word!--has swung
too far. Unless we can contrive a means of holding back the clock, the
doom of the world is upon us.”

“It all comes of denying God, of banishing him from the planet,” said
the host.

“But is he banished from the planet? Take a man like Gervase Brandon.
Life gave him everything. No man had a greater love of peace, yet when
the call came he threw to the wind all his most cherished convictions,
went to the war in the knightly spirit of a crusader, and for the rest
of his days on earth is condemned to a state of existence from which
death is a merciful release.”

“By sacrifice ye shall enter,” said the vicar.

“I am not competent to speak upon that. But one’s private conception of
God is not banished from this corner of the planet as long as England
teems with Gervase Brandons.”

“There I am fully with you,” said the vicar. “To me Gervase Brandon
will always be a symbol of what man can rise to in the way of
deliberate heroism, just as the beaches of Gallipoli will be enshrined
forever in the history of the race to which he belongs. I have only to
think of Gervase Brandon to affirm that God is more potent in the world
than he ever was--and that is the awful paradox.”

“I don’t presume to question that,” said the host. “But the problem now
for the world is, how shall his power be made supreme? That is what a
ruined civilization has now to ask itself. All civilized people agree
that war itself must cease, yet before it can do so there will have to
be a conversion of the heart of man.”

“You are right,” said Speke, in his dry, cool voice. “And to my mind,
as the world is constituted, the problem admits of no solution.”

“In other words,” said the host, “there must always be wars and rumors
of wars until God has created Himself.”

“Or rather let us say,” the vicar rejoined, “until God has affirmed
Himself. Hence the need for the second advent.”

“I wonder if we shall realize it when it occurs,” said Speke, his hand
straying to his champagne glass. “In all its fundamentals the world is
as it was two thousand years ago in Palestine. If Christ walked the
earth again, it is certain that he would be treated now as he was then.”

“That, one cannot believe,” interposed Lady Jane with ready vehemence.
“Even you admit, George, the amount of practical Christianity there is
in the world. I, for one, will not believe all this sacrifice has been
in vain.”

“I agree with you, Lady Jane,” said the vicar. “When He comes to resume
His ministry, as come He will, at all events He will find that His
Church has been true. But at present, I confess, one looks in vain for
a sign of His advent.”

Speke shook his head. “With all submission,” he said, “if Christ
appeared today he would be treated as a harmless crank, or he would be
put in an asylum. Think of his reception by the yellow press--the ruler
of nations, the maker of governments, the welder of empires. He would
find it the same pleasant world he left two thousand years ago. Man, in
sum, the vocal working majority, whether in London, Paris, Berlin, New
York, or Petrograd, could not possibly meet the Master face to face or
even hope to recognize him when he passed by.”

“That is true, no doubt,” said the vicar, “of the mass of the people.
Men of truly spiritual mold are in a hopeless minority. But they are
still among us. Depend upon it, when the hour comes they will recognize
the Master’s voice, depend upon it, they will know His face.”

“I wonder?” said George Speke.

“I am absolutely convinced of that, George.” And Lady Jane, one with
the law and the prophets, gave the signal to the ladies and rose
superbly from the dinner table.




XII


WHEN the ladies had left the room the vicar took the chair on the
right of his host, and then he said across the table to George Speke:
“Talking of poor Brandon, what opinion did you form of him mentally
when you saw him this afternoon?”

“Mentally!... I thought him rather wonderful.”

The eyes of the vicar searched those of the man opposite. If this was a
conventional statement it was the clear desire of those eyes to expose
it.

“The poise of his mind seemed to me perfect. And somehow one hadn’t
quite expected it.”

“You felt he was in full possession of his whole mental faculty?”

“Didn’t you?”

The vicar’s failure to answer the question might be taken for a
negative.

“Moreover, he greatly impressed me,” Speke added. There were two George
Spekes. One had the departmental mind; the other was something more
considerable than a rather arid public record indicated. “I always knew
that he had a very first-rate intellect, but this afternoon it was
even more striking than usual.”

“But,” said the vicar cautiously, “don’t you think it may be misleading
him?”

“How? In what way?”

“I will give you a concrete instance of what I mean.” The vicar spoke
very gravely. “And by the way, Whymper, it is a matter I want to talk
to you about particularly. At Penfold, we are cursed with a sort of
village ne’er-do-well, who has taken to writing poetry, blaspheming the
Creator, and upholding the cause of the enemy. I am sorry to say that
for some years now Brandon has been this man’s friend, lent him books
from his private collection, helped to support him, and so on. Well,
this morning, when I went to Hart’s Ghyll, Brandon told me that he had
lately read a poem of this fellow John Smith’s, and that it had made a
very deep impression upon him.”

“That’s interesting,” said Speke. “He told me the same. He said that
a young man who lived in the village had lately produced the most
wonderful poem he had ever read.”

“On the face of it, didn’t that strike you as nonsense?”

“No, not in the way that Brandon said it. He spoke as one having
authority; and in the matter of poetry, he is thought, I believe, to
have a good deal.”

“It may be so. But one mustn’t forget that in this case he is claiming
semidivine honors for a half-educated, wholly mad village wastrel.”

“Mad!”

“So mad that we are having to arrange for him to be taken care of.”

“But surely such a man as Brandon could hardly be deceived by one of
that caliber! He gave chapter and verse. He said that John Smith was
a great clairvoyant, who had more windows open in his soul than other
people.”

“Didn’t it strike you as a fantastic statement?”

“Why should it? I haven’t seen the poem, and he has; I don’t know John
Smith and he does. Why should it strike one as a fantastic statement?”

“No, of course, you couldn’t be expected to know that John Smith is as
mad as a hatter. But Brandon should know that as well as I do.”

“He says the man’s inspired--_Gottbetrunken_ was the word he used.”

“The man is a blasphemer and an atheist, and a pro-German to boot. And,
as I say, steps are being taken to put him in a place of safety. We
shall need _your_ help, Whymper; there’ll be a magistrates’ order for
you to sign presently. But the distressing thing is that such a mind as
Gervase Brandon’s should be susceptible to the man’s claptrap. The only
explanation that occurs to one is that the poor dear fellow’s brain is
going.”

“Well, I can only say that there seemed no trace of it this afternoon.
I’ll admit that I thought him a little exalted, a little more the
seer and the visionary than one quite liked to see him. But after all
he must have walked pretty close with God. If a man gives up all the
fair and easy things of life to storm the beaches of Gallipoli, it is
not unlikely that a corner of the prophet’s mantle may be found for
him--even if one agrees that it is a rather uncomfortable vestment.”

“There may be something in what you say.” The vicar shook a sad,
unconvinced head. “But we have to deal with the thing as it exists. We
have to look the facts in the face.”

“But what are the facts--that the poet bears the prosaic name of John
Smith, that he belongs to the charming village of Penfold, and that he
is an atheist.”

“A blasphemer and a pro-German, and that circumstances have made it
necessary to inquire into his mental condition. His recent conduct
in the village has made him amenable to the Blasphemy Laws and the
Defense of the Realm Regulations.”

“Does Brandon know this?”

“Unfortunately he does. And that is why one is compelled to take such a
gloomy view of the poor dear fellow at the present time.”

“Very odd,” said George Speke.

“Very tragic,” said the vicar.




XIII


IT was nearly midnight when old Alice turned in at the vicarage gate.
Having handed her to the care of his man-of-all-work, the ancient
Hobson, who was sitting up for her, the vicar said good-night to Edith
and then went to his study. He had had a particularly trying day, and
a man of less strength of will would have been content for this to be
its end. But he could not bring himself to go to bed while that page
of an accusing emptiness lay upon his blotting pad. It was within five
minutes of Sunday and his sermon was hardly begun.

The clock on the chimneypiece struck the hour. The vicar turned up his
reading lamp and sat down at his desk. He was really very tired and
heart-sore, but for many a long year he had not failed in his pastoral
duty, and he was not going to fail now. There was one line already
traced in a bold, firm hand on the sheet before him. “Let us cast off
the works of darkness, let us put on the armor of light.”

The words came upon him with a shock of surprise. He could not remember
having written them. And at this moment, weary in body and spirit,
he was not able to meet their implication. Overborne by the weight of
an unintelligible world, he was unequal to their message. He drew his
pen through them and wrote: “Vengeance is mine, saith the Lord. I will
repay.” It was lower, easier ground for a man tired and dispirited,
and, after all, it was the ideal text for war time. He had preached
from it many times already, but in that hour it seemed the only one for
his mood.

Yes, such a vengeance had come upon the world as had been long
predicted. Once more those prophetic words glowed on the page with a
living fire: “There shall be wars and rumors of war.” Terrible, ancient
phrases, vibrating with emotion, came with a subliminal uprush into his
mind. How miraculously had the Word been fulfilled. But one thing was
needed to complete the tale, and that the far-off divine event to which
the whole creation moves.

But, the vicar asked, as phrases and thoughts of his own began to take
shape, was this Second Coming to be regarded as a literal fact of the
physical world, was it only to be regarded by the eye of faith, or was
it merely the figment of a poet’s fancy? It behooved the world of men
to search its heart. Let all face the question that the time-spirit
was asking; let all face it fully, frankly, fearlessly.

The Christ was overdue. In the opinion of many, if civilization, if
humanity was to continue, there must be a divine intervention. These
organized and deepening hatreds were destroying the soul of the world.
Even average sensual men had come to realize this vital need. But--the
vicar began to gnaw the stump of his pen furiously--an age that had
ceased to believe in miracles was now crying out for a miracle to
happen.

“O ye of little faith,” wrote the vicar as the first subheading of his
great theme. Only a miracle could now save a world that had so long
derided them. The vicar wrote the word Nemesis, and then in brackets,
“Terrible word--retributive justice.”

Yes, the only hope remaining for a blood-soaked world was to accept the
miracle of the Incarnation. And to accept that miracle was to affirm
the second advent.

How will He come? The vicar left a space on the slowly filling page,
and then wrote his question in the form of a second subheading. How
will He appear to us, this Christ of pity, and purity, and peace? Would
the heavens open, as the Book of Revelation had foretold; would the
King of the World emerge from the clouds to the blowing of trumpets,
crowned in a chariot? Or would He come as a spirit on the face of the
waters? Who should say? But come He must, because of the promise He had
made.

“The duty of faith in this present hour,” wrote the vicar, as a third
subheading. It was a man’s duty to reject the carpings of science and
the machinations of modern denial. He must believe where he could not
prove. The vicar wrote in brackets, “It is very difficult to do that in
an age of skepticism.”

“The watchers.” The vicar drew a line under his fourth subheading. All
men must stand as upon a tower, their eyes fixed on the far horizon,
in the hope that they might see in the eastern sky the herald of a new
heaven and a new earth. And by that portent, which was the light of
sublime truth, must they learn to know the Master when He came among
them. But only the faithful could hope to do that.

“The danger of His coming to a world in which none should know Him,”
was the final clause of the vicar’s sermon. That would be the supreme
tragedy.

The sudden striking of the clock on the chimneypiece startled the
vicar. “Four o’clock!” he said. And he went to bed.




XIV


MR. PERRY-HENNINGTON was troubled by many things, but he was tired
out by his long day and fell asleep at once. He was still sleeping
when Prince, the parlor maid, brought him a cup of tea at a quarter to
seven. Another trying day was upon him. He had to take three services,
and to give the children’s address in a neighboring parish in the
afternoon. A hard but uninspired worker, he never flinched from his
duty, but did the task next him. It pleased him to think that he got
things done, and, like all men of his type, never allowed himself to
doubt for a moment that they were worth the doing.

At the morning service Mr. Perry-Hennington preached a sermon that
had done duty on many occasions. It was his custom to keep the new
discourse for the evening, when the congregation was larger as a rule.
“He came to His own and His own knew him not,” was the text of the
morning homily. It had always been one of his favorites, and every
time he rendered it he found some new embroidery to weave upon that
poignant theme. And this morning, in the emotional stress of a recent
event which lurked a shadow at the back of his thoughts, his mind
played upon it with a vigor that surprised even himself. He was at his
best. Such a feeling of power came upon him as he had seldom known.

While the last hymn was being sung the vicar’s eyes strayed to the back
of the church. He was surprised and a little disconcerted to see John
Smith standing there. The young man was singing heartily, and as the
bright rays from the window fell upon his face it became a center of
light. Yet that unexpected presence cast a shadow across the vicar’s
mind. It was as if a cloud had suddenly darkened the sun.

At the end of the service Mr. Perry-Hennington was the last to leave
the church. By the time he had taken off his vestments the small
congregation had dispersed. But one member of it still lingered near
the lich gate, at the end of the churchyard, and as the vicar came down
the path this person stopped him. A rather odd-looking man wearing a
white hat, he gave the vicar an impression of being overdressed, but
his strong face had an individuality that would have commanded notice
anywhere.

This man, who had been scanning the tombstones in the churchyard, had
evidently stayed behind to speak to the vicar. Yet he was a total
stranger to the neighborhood, whose presence among his flock Mr.
Perry-Hennington had noted that morning for the first time. At the
vicar’s slow approach the man in the white hat came forward with a
hearty outstretched hand.

“Delighted to meet you, sir,” he said.

To the conventional mind of the vicar this was a very unconventional
greeting on the part of one he had not seen before; and he took the
proffered hand with an air of reserve.

“Allow me to congratulate you on your discourse,” said the stranger in
an idiom which struck the vicar as rather unusual. “It was first-rate.
And I’m a judge. I think I am anyway.” The man in the white hat
spoke in such a cool, simple, forthcoming manner, that the vicar was
nonplussed. And yet there was such a charm about him that even a spirit
in pontificalibus could hardly resent it.

“Ah, I see,” said the stranger, noting the vicar’s stiffening of
attitude with an amused eye, “you are waiting for an introduction.
Well, I’m a neighbor, the new tenant of Longwood.”

“Oh, really,” said the vicar. The air of constraint lightened a little,
but it was too heavy to vanish at once. “I am glad to meet you.”

“Let me give you a card.” The new neighbor suddenly dived into a hidden
recess of a light gray frock coat, and whipped out a small case.

Mr. Perry-Hennington with a leisureliness half reluctant, and in almost
comic contrast to the stranger’s freedom of gesture, accepted the
card, disentangled his eyeglasses from his pectoral cross, and read
it carefully. It bore the inscription: Mr. Gazelee Payne Murdwell, 94
Fifth Avenue, New York.

“Glad to meet you, Mr. Murdwell,” said the vicar, with a note of
reassurance coming into his tone. “Allow me to welcome you among
us.” The voice, in its grave sonority, rose almost to a point. It
didn’t quite achieve it, but the fact that the man was an American
and also the new tenant of Longwood accounted for much. For the
vicar was already quite sure that he didn’t belong to the island.
The native article could not have had that particular manner, nor
could it have dressed in that particular way, nor could it have shown
that extraordinary, half quizzical self-security. A new man from the
city might have achieved the white hat (with modifications), the
gray frock coat, the white waistcoat, the white spats, the wonderful
checked cravat, but he could not have delivered a frontal attack on
an obviously reverend and honorable gentleman, for long generations
indigenous to the soil of the county, on the threshold of his own
parish church.

“Now look here, vicar,” said Gazelee Payne Murdwell, with an easy note
of intimacy, “you and I have got to know one another. And it has got
to be soon. This is all new to me.” Mr. Murdwell waved a jeweled and
romantic hand, a fine gesture, which included a part of Kent, a part
of Sussex, a suggestion of Surrey, and even a suspicion of Hampshire.
“And I’m new to you. As I figure you out at the moment, even allowing a
liberal discount for the state of Europe, you are rather like a comic
opera”--the vicar drew in his lips primly--“and as you figure me out,
if looks mean anything, I’m fit for a Mappin Terrace at the Zoo. But
that’s a wrong attitude. We’ve got to come together. And the sooner the
better, because you are going to find me a pretty good neighbor.”

“I have not the least doubt of that, Mr.--er--Murdwell,” said the
vicar, glancing deliberately and augustly at the card in his hand.

“Well, as a guaranty of good intentions on both sides, suppose you and
your daughter dine at Longwood on Wednesday? I am a bachelor at the
moment, but Juley--my wife--and Bud--my daughter--will be down by then.”

“Wednesday!” The vicar’s left eyebrow was mobilized in the form of a
slight frown. But the invitation had come so entirely unawares that
unless he pleaded an engagement which didn’t exist, and his conscience
therefore would not have sanctioned, there really seemed no way of
escape.

“You will? Wednesday. A quarter to eight. That’s bully.” And in order
to clinch the matter, Mr. Murdwell slipped an arm through the vicar’s,
and slowly accompanied him as far as the vicarage gate.




XV


MANY things, however, had to happen in the parish before Mr.
Perry-Hennington could dine at Longwood on Wednesday. And the first of
them in the order of their occurrence was an inquiry of Edith’s at the
Sunday luncheon in regard to their new neighbor.

“A most curious man has just waylaid me,” the vicar said. “An American,
who says he has taken Longwood.”

“Oh, yes,” said Edith, in her precise voice. “The _odd_-looking man in
church this morning, I suppose?”

“He gave me his card.” The vicar produced the card, and requested
Prince, the parlor maid, to hand it to Miss Edith. “He insists on our
dining at Longwood on Wednesday. It seems only neighborly to do so.”

“Immensely rich, I believe,” said Edith, scanning the card at her
leisure, with the aid of a pair of tortoise shell spectacles, which she
wore with considerable effect.

“Who is he? What is he?” There might, or there might not have been a
slight accession of interest to the vicar’s tone.

“Lady Tyrwhitt was talking about him the other day. He is a great
American inventor, the discoverer of Murdwell’s Law.”

“Ah-h,” said the vicar, intelligently. But Murdwell’s Law was a sealed
book to him.

“Immensely important scientific fact, I believe,” Edith explained.
“Lady Tyrwhitt seems to know all about it. I couldn’t grasp it myself.
I only know that Lady Tyrwhitt says it is going to revolutionize
everything.”

“Ah-h!” said the vicar.

“It has something to do with radioactivity I believe, and the
liberation of certain electrons in the ether. That may not be exactly
correct. I only know that it is something extremely scientific. Lady
Tyrwhitt says Mr. Murdwell is tremendously pro-Ally, and that he is
over to help us win the war.”

“Oh-h!” said the vicar. “He seems an uncommonly interesting man.”

“A very wonderful person. Lady Tyrwhitt says he is one of the most
remarkable men living. And she says he is never out of sight of private
detectives, because of the number of attempts that have been made on
his life.”

“I shall look forward to meeting him again on Wednesday.”

Before Wednesday came, however, the vicar had much else to think about.
Ever in the forefront of his mind was the vexatious matter of John
Smith. It had been arranged that on the next day, Monday, Dr. Parker
should come out from Brombridge, lunch at the vicarage, and then, if
possible, interview the young man.

On Monday morning the vicar made a preliminary survey of the ground.
He went down to the village, and had a little talk with Field, the
carpenter. From him he learned that John Smith had downed tools for
a fortnight past, that he had been roaming the countryside at all
hours of the day and night, and that “he wor shapin’ for another of
his attacks.” Field was a sensible man, whom the vicar respected in
spite of the fact that he was not among the most regular of the flock;
therefore at some length he discussed with him a very vexed question.
In reply to a direct canvass of his judgment, Field admitted that “John
might be a bit soft-like.” At the same time he confessed the highest
affection and admiration for him, and somewhat to the vicar’s annoyance
volunteered the opinion that “he went about doing good.”

“How _can_ you think that, Field?” said Mr. Perry-Hennington, sternly.

“Well, sir, they say he keeps the chaps out of the publics.”

“Who says so?”

“At Brombridge, sir. They are getting to think a lot of him there.”

“Are they indeed?”

“He preaches there you know, sir, on Sunday afternoons at the market
cross.”

The vicar was shocked and scandalized. “I hope,” he said, “that he
doesn’t give vent to the sort of opinions he does here.”

“Yes, sir,” said Field, with respectful perplexity. “I know you parsons
think him a bit of a freethinker, but I’m sure he means well. And
begging your pardon, sir, he knows a lot about the Bible too.”

“I take leave to doubt that, Field,” said the vicar, who had
suddenly grown so deeply annoyed that he felt unable to continue the
conversation. He left the shop abruptly. A little more light had been
thrown on the subject, but somehow it increased his sense of worry
and discomfort. He had not thought well to enlighten Field as to
the gravamen of the charge, yet it was hard to repress a feeling of
irritation that so sensible a man should hold such a heterodox view of
his employee.

True to his appointment, Dr. Parker arrived at one o’clock. Before he
came Mr. Perry-Hennington told Edith in a casual way the reason of his
coming to Penfold. To her father’s consternation, something in the
nature of a scene had followed.

“Then you intend to have him removed to an asylum!” she exclaimed in a
tone of horror.

“Undoubtedly. The public interest demands nothing less.”

The girl was greatly upset. And nothing her father could say had any
effect upon her distress. She felt herself responsible for this tragic
pass. Her unhappy intervention in the first place had brought the thing
about, and now she rued it bitterly. She implored her father to let
the matter drop. But her prayer was vain. At all times a singularly
obstinate man, upon a question of conscience and duty he was not likely
to be moved by mere words.

Out of respect for his daughter’s feelings, and also out of regard
for the ears of Prince, the parlor maid, Mr. Perry-Hennington did not
refer to the matter in the course of the meal. But as soon as it was
over he discussed it at length with his visitor. And he presented his
view of the matter with such a cogent energy that, for such a mind as
Dr. Parker’s, whose main concern was “things as they are,” the case
of John Smith was greatly prejudiced. He did not say as much to the
vicar, indeed he did his best to keep an open and impartial mind on the
subject, but he would have been more or less than himself had he not
felt that only the strongest possible justification could have moved
such a man as Mr. Perry-Hennington to his present course of action.

In the privacy of the study the vicar explained the situation to Dr.
Parker at considerable length, giving chapter and verse for the theory
he had formed. And then the two gentlemen set out to find John Smith.

Fate went with them. A slow, solemn climb from the vicarage to the
village green brought a prompt reward. Straight before them a frail,
bareheaded, poorly-clad figure was outlined against a rather wild June
sky.

“Our man,” the vicar whispered.

Dispositions of approach were made automatically. The two gentlemen
stepped on to the common sedately enough. As they did so, the vicar
ostentatiously pointed out the grandeur of the scene, and its wide,
sweeping outlook on two counties, while the doctor lingered in
examination of the heath and the plucking of a flower.

As usual the young man was leaning against the priest’s stone. Near by
was a delicate flower which Dr. Parker stooped to gather.

“Tell me, what’s the name of this little thing?” he said to the vicar,
in a loud bluff voice.

“You’re overtaxing my knowledge,” said the vicar, with a similar bluff
heartiness. “I don’t think I’ve ever noticed it before. But here is a
man who can help us, no doubt.”

With a courteous, disarming smile, the vicar suddenly brought his eyes
to bear on John Smith. And then he added in a voice full of kindness
and encouragement: “I am sure _you_ can tell us the name of this
flower.”

“Yes, I should very much like to know.” As the doctor gave John Smith
the flower, he seized the moment for the closest possible scrutiny
of the man before him. Not a detail was lost of the extraordinarily
sensitive face, with its gaunt but beautiful lines, the luminous
eyes, whose pupils were distended to an abnormal width, the look of
fastidious cleanliness, which the poor clothes and the rough boots
seemed to accentuate.

“It is a kind of wild orchis,” said the young man in a gentle tone,
which to the doctor’s ear had a rather curious sound. “It is not common
hereabouts, but you will find a few in Mr. Whymper’s copse over at
Grayfield.”

“You seem well up in the subject of flowers,” said Dr. Parker.

“I study them,” said the young man with a quick intensity which caused
the doctor to purse his lips. “I love them so.” He pressed the slender,
tiny petals to his lips. “What a wonderful, wonderful thing is that
little flower! I weep when I look at it.”

Involuntarily the doctor and the vicar looked at the young man’s face.
His eyes had filled with tears.

“Why do you let a harmless little flower affect you in that way?” said
Dr. Parker.

“I suppose it’s the joy I feel in its beauty. I love it, I love it!”
And he gave back the little flower to the doctor with a kind of rapture.

“Do you feel like that about everything?”

“Oh, yes. I worship the Father in all created things.” The
too-sensitive face changed suddenly. A light broke over it. “I am
intoxicated with the wonders around me, I am enchanted with the glories
of the things I see.”

“It certainly is a very wonderful world that we live in,” said the
vicar, who sometimes fell unconsciously into his pulpit voice.

“Think of the continents of divine energy in the very air we breathe.”
There was a hush of awe in the voice of John Smith. “Think of the
miracles happening under that tiny leaf.”

“They are not visible to me.” Dr. Parker impressively removed
his gold-rimmed eyeglasses and rubbed them slowly on a red silk
handkerchief.

The young man drew aside a frond of bracken, and disclosed a colony of
black ants.

“Does the sight of that move you also?” said Dr. Parker.

“They are part of the mystery. I see the Father there.”

“I presume you mean God?” said the vicar.

“Male and female created He them,” said the young man in a hushed tone.
“I hardly dare look at the wonders around me, now the scales have
fallen from my eyes and the heavens have opened.”

“The heavens have opened!” said Dr. Parker.

“Oh, yes. I can read them now. I gaze upon the portals. I see the
chariots. There are the strong souls of the saints riding in glory
across the sky. Look! look!”

The doctor and the vicar followed the lines of the young man’s hand,
which pointed straight into a brilliant, but storm-shot sun. They had
instantly to lower their eyes.

“It would blind one to look at that,” said Dr. Parker.

“Nothing can blind you if you have learned to see,” said the young man.
It astonished them to observe that his gaze was fixed upon the flaming
disc of light. Suddenly he placed a finger on his lips, entreating them
to listen.

The doctor and the vicar listened intently.

“Do you hear the music?”

“I am afraid I hear nothing,” said Dr. Parker.

“Nor I,” said the vicar.

“There are harps in the air.”

“I don’t hear a sound,” said Dr. Parker.

“Nor I,” said the vicar, straining his ears; “or if I do it is the
water of the mill by Burkett’s farm.”

“The longer I listen, the more wonderful the music grows.”

The vicar and the doctor shook their heads gravely.

“There are also times, I believe, when you hear voices?” said the vicar.

“Yes, a voice speaks to me continually.”

“Would you say it belonged to any particular person,” said the doctor,
“or that it came from any particular source?”

“It is the voice of the Father.”

“The voice of God, I presume?”

“Yes--the voice of God.”

“Does it lay a charge upon you?” the vicar asked.

“It tells me to save the world.”

The complete simplicity of the statement took the vicar and the doctor
aback. They looked solemnly at each other, and then at him who had made
it.

“And you intend to obey it?” The doctor managed to put the question in
a tone of plain matter-of-course.

The young man’s face took a strange pallor. “I must, I must,” he said.
And as he spoke his questioners noticed that he had begun to shake
violently.

“Are we to understand,” said the vicar, speaking very slowly, “that you
expect supernatural powers to be given you?”

“I don’t know. I cannot say.” A light broke over the gentle face. “But
a way will be found.”

“How do you know that?” said the vicar.

“It has been communicated to me.”

“Is that to say,” the vicar sternly demanded, “that you are about to
claim plenary powers?”

Before the young man answered the question he covered his eyes with his
hands. Again he stood in an attitude of curious listening intensity.
The doctor thought he could hear a wind, very faint and gentle,
stirring in the upper air, but to the vicar it was the sound of water
flowing by Burkett’s farm.

The vicar repeated his question.

“I am to claim nothing,” said the young man at last.

“You do not claim to be a Buddha or a Messiah, or anything of that
kind?” said the vicar, compressing stern lips.

Again there was silence. Again the young man closed his eyes.

“I am to claim nothing,” he said.




XVI


INVOLUNTARILY, as it seemed, and without an attempt to carry the matter
further, the vicar and the doctor turned abruptly on their heels and
left the common.

“A case of possession,” said the doctor, by the time they had reached
the top of the village street. “And quite the most curious in my
experience.”

“At any rate,” said the vicar, “now you have seen the man for yourself,
you will have not the slightest difficulty in certifying him!”

“You really feel it to be wise and necessary?”

“I do.” The vicar spoke with his habitual air of decision. “I feel very
strongly that it will be in the public interest. In fact, I go further.
I feel very strongly that it will be in the national interest to have
this man certified as a lunatic.”

“He seems a singularly harmless creature.”

“There is always the fear that he may get worse. But apart from that,
he is having a bad effect on weak, uneducated minds. He already
pretends to powers he doesn’t possess, and has taken lately to
faith-healing, and mischievous nonsense of that kind.”

The rubicund visage of Dr. Parker assumed a grave, professional look.
“There can be no doubt,” he said, “that he is on the verge of, if he is
not already suffering from, mania.”

“In a word,” said the vicar, “you fully agree that it will be wise to
have him taken care of?”

“From what you have told me,” said Dr. Parker, with professional
caution, “I am inclined to think that, in a time like the present, it
may be the right course to adopt.”

“Very well,” said the vicar gravely. “Let us now go and see Joliffe,
and get him to indorse your opinion as the law requires. And then
tomorrow morning I will run over to Grayfield and get Whymper to move
in the matter without delay.”




XVII


THE vicar and Dr. Parker slowly descended the long, straggling village
street, until they came to Dr. Joliffe’s gate. They found their man
at home. In shirt sleeves and pipe in mouth he was mowing the back
lawn with a very creditable display of energy for a householder of
fifty-five, on an extremely oppressive afternoon.

The perspiring Dr. Joliffe donned a light alpaca coat, and then led his
visitors to the summerhouse at the bottom of the garden, where they
could talk without fear of being overheard.

The vicar began at once in a concise, businesslike way.

“Dr. Parker has seen John Smith. And he is quite ready to certify him.”

“Hopelessly mad, poor fellow, I’m afraid,” said Dr. Parker.

A quick frown passed across the face of Dr. Joliffe.

“Dangerously?” The tone was curt.

Dr. Parker slowly weighed out a careful reply.

“Not exactly, in an active sense. But there is no saying when he will
become so. At any time acute mania may intervene.”

“It may, of course.” But it was a reluctant admission. Moreover,
there was an implication behind it which Dr. Parker was not slow to
understand. No love was lost between these two, nor was their estimate
of each other’s professional abilities altogether flattering.

“Highly probable,” said Dr. Parker, in a warming tone.

“Contrary to my experience of the man. I’ve known him some years now,
and though I’m bound to own that he has always seemed a bit cracked, it
has never occurred to me that it was a case to certify, and with all
deference I am not quite convinced even now.”

“But surely, Joliffe,” the vicar interposed, with some little acerbity,
“the need for the course we propose to take was made clear to you on
Saturday?”

The look of doubt deepened in Dr. Joliffe’s red face. “I’m very
sorry”--there was obvious hesitation in the tone--“but you are really
asking a general practitioner to take a great deal on himself.”

“But why?” There was a perceptible stiffening of the vicar’s voice. “I
thought I had fully explained to you on Saturday what the alternative
is. You see if we can’t get the man into an asylum quietly and
humanely, he must be made amenable to the Defense of the Realm
Regulations. If you would prefer that course to be taken I will go over
to the Depot and see General Clarke. We are bound in honor to move in
the matter. But Dr. Parker agrees with me that an asylum will be kinder
to the man himself, less disturbing to the public mind, and therefore
in the national interest.”

“I do, indeed,” said Dr. Parker.

But the frown was deepening upon Dr. Joliffe’s face.

“I see the force of your argument,” he said. “But knowing the man as
I do, and feeling him to be a harmless chap, although just a little
cracked, no doubt, I’m not sure that you don’t take an exaggerated view
of what he said the other day.”

“Exaggerated view!” The vicar caught up the phrase. “My friend,” he
said imperiously, “don’t you realize the danger of having such things
said in this parish at a time like the present?”

“Yes, I do.” There was a stiffening of attitude at the vicar’s tone.
“But even in a time like the present, I shouldn’t like to overstate its
importance.”

The vicar looked at Dr. Joliffe almost with an air of pity. “Don’t you
realize the effect it might have on some of our young villagers?”

“Well, that is the point, and I’m not sure that you don’t overstate it,
vicar.”

“That’s an Irishman all over,” said Mr. Perry-Hennington to Dr. Parker
in an impatient aside. “One can never get him to agree to anything.”

“Even if I was born in Limerick,” said Dr. Joliffe, with an arch smile,
“it gives me no particular pleasure to be unreasonable. I’ll own that
when the best has been said for the man he’s not so wise as he might
be.”

“And don’t forget that he claims to be a Messiah.”

“So I understand. But there’s historical precedent even for that, if we
are to believe the Bible.”

The vicar drew his lips into a straight line, and Dr. Parker followed
his example.

They did not venture to look at each other, but it was clear they held
the opinion in common that Dr. Joliffe had been guilty of a grave
breach of taste.

“The trouble with you Saxons,” said Dr. Joliffe, who had been
getting his back gradually to the wall, “is that you have too little
imagination; the trouble with us Celts that we have too much.”

“Joliffe,” said the vicar, in a tone of pain and surprise, “please
understand that such a thing as imagination does not enter into this
matter. We are face to face with a very unpleasant fact. There is a
mad person in this parish, who goes about uttering stupid blasphemies,
who openly sides with the enemy, and we have to deal with him in a
humane, but practical and efficient way. Dr. Parker and I are agreed
that the public safety calls for certain measures; we are also agreed
that the national interest will be best served by their adoption. Are
you ready to fall in with our views?--that is the question it is my
duty to ask you.”

Dr. Joliffe stroked a square jaw. He resented the vicar’s tone and at
that moment he disliked Dr. Parker more intensely than he had ever
disliked any human being. In Dr. Joliffe’s opinion both stood for a
type of pharisee behind which certain reactionary forces, subtle but
deadly, invariably intrenched themselves. But Dr. Joliffe, although
cursed with an average share of human weakness, was at heart a
fair-minded man. And his one desire, now that he was up against a
delicate problem, was to hold the balance true between both parties.
From the Anglo-Saxon standpoint the vicar and that old fool, Parker,
were right no doubt; but from the Celtic outlook there was also
something to be said of John Smith.

“Now, Joliffe,” said the vicar, “please understand this. Our man has to
be put away quietly, without any fuss. He will be very comfortable in
the county asylum. I speak from experience. I go there once a month.
Everything possible is done to insure the well-being of the inmates.
It may be possible to let him take his books with him. He is a great
reader, I hear--even writes verses of sorts. Anyhow I will speak to
Dr. Macey about him at the first opportunity, and do all I can for his
comfort and happiness.”

But Dr. Joliffe compressed obstinate lips, and stared with a fixed blue
eye at the storm clouds coming up from that dangerous quarter, the
southwest.

“By the way, as I think I told you,” continued the vicar, “I spoke to
Whymper on Saturday evening. He sees as I do. And he said the bench
would support my action, provided the man was duly certified by two
doctors to meet the requirements of the Lord Chancellor. Now come,
Joliffe, be reasonable.”

But Dr. Joliffe shook a somber head.

“I don’t like to do it on my own responsibility,” he said.

“But you have our friend Parker to share it.”

“The fact is,” said Dr. Joliffe slowly, “I walked as far as Hart’s
Ghyll this morning to have a little talk with Brandon on the subject.”

“Gervase Brandon!” To the mind of the vicar much was explained. “Wasn’t
it rather a pity to trouble the poor fellow with a thing of this kind
in his present condition?”

“I understand that you didn’t hesitate to trouble him with it on
Saturday.”

“I did not. I felt it to be my duty.”

The retort was so obvious, that Dr. Joliffe did not trouble to make it.
When the vicar chose to look at things from the angle of his official
status it was hardly worth while to argue with him.

“May I ask what you said to Gervase Brandon?”

“I told him what you proposed to do.”

The vicar shook a dubious head. “Was that wise, do you think--in the
circumstances?”

Dr. Joliffe ignored the question.

“I informed him also,” he added, “that I didn’t feel equal to taking
such a great responsibility upon myself.”

“You went so far as to tell him that?”

“I did. This affair has cost me a great deal of anxiety since I saw you
on Saturday. I feel very strongly that we ought to have further advice.”

“We have it.” The vicar inclined a diplomatist’s head in Dr. Parker’s
direction.

“I told the squire,” said Dr. Joliffe, with a menacing eye upon Dr,
Parker, “that I didn’t feel able to move in the matter without the
advice of a mental specialist.”

“The man is as mad as a hatter,” said Dr. Parker, with the air of a
mental specialist.

“But is he certifiable--that’s the point?”

“He’s a source of danger to the community,” the vicar cut in. But Dr.
Joliffe had asked Dr. Parker the question, and his eye demanded that
Dr. Parker should answer it.

“I think we may take Mr. Perry-Hennington’s word for that,” said Dr.
Parker.

“Well, with all deference,” said Dr. Joliffe, “the squire feels very
strongly that the man ought not to be interfered with.”

The vicar was plainly annoyed. He caught up Dr. Joliffe sharply. “I am
sorry to say that Brandon with all his merits is little better than an
atheist.”

The tone and the manner were a little too much for Irish blood. “And
so am I if it comes to that,” said Dr. Joliffe; and then like a true
Hibernian he added: “And I thank God for it.”

The vicar and Dr. Parker were greatly pained by this indiscretion,
but both were careful to refrain by word or gesture from making the
slightest comment upon it.

“Well, Joliffe,” said the vicar, when at last he was able to achieve
the necessary composure, “if you cannot see your way to act with us we
must find someone who will.”

By now the blood of Dr. Joliffe was running dangerously high. But fresh
with his talk with Brandon, which had greatly impressed him, he somehow
felt that big issues were at stake. Therefore he must hold himself in
hand.

“Mr. Perry-Hennington,” he said, after an inward struggle, in a voice
scrupulously mild, “I must tell you that Mr. Brandon has offered to pay
the fee of any mental specialist we may like to summon, and that he
will abide by his decision.”

“Abide by his decision!” The words were unfortunate, but tact was not
one of Dr. Joliffe’s virtues. “Very good of Brandon I’m sure. But may
one ask where _he_ stands in the matter?”

“He’s the friend of John Smith.”

“It hardly seems a friendship to be proud of.” The vicar continued
to let off steam. “Still I think I see your point. The law entitles
the man to have a friend to speak for him, and if Brandon constitutes
himself his champion we can’t complain. What do you say, Parker?”

“By all means let him be given every chance,” said Dr. Parker, in a
suave, judicial tone. “Personally I don’t think there is a shadow of a
doubt that the man is of unsound mind, and I am convinced, after what
you have told me, that he ought to be taken care of; but as Joliffe
doesn’t agree, and as Mr. Brandon will pay a specialist’s fee, I am
quite willing to meet him in consultation.”

“Very well, Parker,” said the vicar, in his getting-things-done voice,
“that seems reasonable. Let us have a man down at once. Suggest
somebody, and we’ll telegraph here and now.”

Dr. Parker thought for a moment.

“Shall we say Murfin? A sound man, I believe, with a good reputation.”

“Belongs to the old school,” said Dr. Joliffe. “Why not Moriarty?”

Dr. Parker stiffened visibly at the interruption. “Wrote a cranky book,
didn’t he, called ‘The Power of Faith’ or something?”

“Moriarty is a pioneer in mental and psychical matters. And Mr. Brandon
has a high opinion of his book. It is only the other day that he
advised me to read it.”

But the vicar shook his head in vigorous dissent. “The trouble is,” he
said, “that Brandon is getting more than a little cranky himself.”

“Depends upon what you mean by the term,” said Dr. Joliffe bridling.

“You know, Joliffe, as well as I do,” the vicar expostulated, “that our
friend Brandon, fine and comprehensive as his intellect may be, is now
in a very curious state. His judgment is no longer to be trusted.”

“I’d trust his judgment before my own in some things,” was Dr.
Joliffe’s rejoinder.

“I’d trust no man’s judgment before my own in anything,” said the
vicar. “I’m no believer in the gloss that is put on everything
nowadays. White is white, black is black, and two and two make
four--that’s my creed, and no amount of intellectual smear is going to
alter it. However, we shall not agree about Brandon, therefore we shall
not agree about Dr. Moriarty. And as it will devolve upon our friend
Parker to meet the specialist and issue the certificate, it seems to me
only fair and reasonable that he should make his own choice.”

With a touch of professional rigor, Dr. Parker thought so too.

“Well, it’s immaterial to me,” said Dr. Joliffe, “as I’m retiring from
the case. All the same I think it would be best for the squire to
decide. He who pays the piper has a right to call the tune.”

“It doesn’t apply in this case,” said the vicar incisively. “One feels
that one is making an immense concession in studying Brandon’s feelings
in the way one is doing. You seem to forget, Joliffe, that we have a
public duty to perform.”

“I am very far from forgetting it. But Brandon and I feel that we have
also our duty to perform. And that is why I take the liberty to suggest
that he should choose his own mental specialist.”

“Preposterous. What do you say, Parker?”

Dr. Parker tacitly agreed.

“Well,” said Dr. Joliffe, “if the squire will consent to Murfin, it’s
all the same to me, but if my opinion is asked, I am bound to say that
to my mind Moriarty is by far the abler man.”

“Why do you think so?” Dr. Parker asked.

“More modern in his ideas. Sees farther. Knows we are only at the
threshold of a tremendous subject.”

“Nonsense, Joliffe.” The vicar was losing a little of his patience.
“White’s white, and black’s black. This man John Smith ought not to be
at large, and neither you nor Brandon nor all the mad doctors in Harley
Street can be allowed to dictate to us in the matter. We have our duty
to do, and very disagreeable it is, but fortunately there is the county
bench behind us.”

“Quite so,” said Dr. Joliffe, drily.

“At the same time we don’t want to put ourselves wrong with public
opinion, nor do we want to act in any way that will hurt people’s
feelings. And it is most undesirable that it should be made into a
party or sectarian matter. Therefore, before we take definite action, I
think I had better walk as far as Hart’s Ghyll, and have a few further
words with Gervase Brandon myself.”

Both doctors promptly fell in with the suggestion. There seemed much to
be said for it. Dr. Parker was invited to await Mr. Perry-Hennington’s
return and to join Dr. Joliffe in a cup of tea in the meantime. To
this proposal Dr. Parker graciously assented; and the vicar, already
inflamed with argument, went forth to Hart’s Ghyll to lay his views
before Gervase Brandon.




XVIII


AS Mr. Perry-Hennington impatiently clicked the doctor’s gate, “Village
pettifogger!” flashed along his nervous system. Only a stupid man, or a
man too much in awe of Hart’s Ghyll could have been guilty of Joliffe’s
scruples, at a moment so ill-timed.

The afternoon’s oppression was growing into the certainty of a storm.
There were many portents from the southwest to which the vicar, walking
rapidly and gathering momentum as he went, paid no attention. He was
really angry with Joliffe; a spirit naturally pontifical had been
fretted by his attitude. Apart from the fact that the issue was clear
to all reasonable minds, Joliffe, having to make a choice between Cæsar
and Pompey, had chosen the latter. It was very annoying, and though Mr.
Perry-Hennington prided himself upon his breadth of view, he could not
suppress a feeling of resentment.

In the middle of Hart’s Ghyll’s glorious avenue a fine car met the
vicar, drove him under the trees and glided by with the flight of a
bird. A lean-looking man in a white hat sat in a corner of the car. As
he went past he waved a hand to the vicar and called out “Wednesday!”
It was his new acquaintance, Mr. Murdwell.

When Mr. Perry-Hennington reached the house, a rather unwelcome
surprise awaited him. Edith was seated in the inner hall with niece
Millicent. Driven by the pangs of conscience, she had come to implore
help for John Smith. But for Millicent, this meant the horns of a
dilemma. Her sympathy had been keenly aroused by her cousin’s strange
confession, but Gervase had been too much troubled by the matter
already, and his wife was very unwilling to tax him further.

The arrival of the vicar, while Edith and Millicent were still
anxiously discussing the line to take, was very embarrassing for all
three. It only needed a hint to set Mr. Perry-Hennington on the track
of their conversation. And when he realized, as he did almost at once,
that Edith was in the very act of working against him, he felt a shock
of pain.

Dissembling his feelings, however, he asked that he might see Gervase.
But Millicent with a shrewd guess at his purpose, went the length of
denying him. Gervase was not quite so well, and she had foolishly
allowed him to tire himself with their American neighbor, the new
tenant of Longwood, who had stayed more than an hour. But the vicar was
not in a mood to be thwarted. The matter was important, and he would
only stay five minutes.

“Well, Uncle Tom,” said the wife anxiously, “if you see Gervase for
five minutes, you must solemnly promise not to refer to John Smith.”

Mr. Perry-Hennington could give no such undertaking. Indeed he had
to admit that John Smith was the sole cause and object of his visit.
Thereupon to Edith’s horror, Millicent suddenly flashed out:

“I think it’s perfectly shameful, Uncle Tom, that you should be acting
toward that dear fellow in the way that you are doing.”

The vicar was quite taken aback. He glanced at the disloyal Edith with
eyes of stern accusation. But it was not his intention to be drawn into
any discussion of the matter with a pair of irresponsible women. He was
hurt, and rather angry, but as always there was a high sense of duty to
sustain him.

“Not more than five minutes, I promise you,” he said decisively. And
then with the air of a law-giver and chief magistrate, he marched along
a low-ceiled, stone-flagged corridor to the library.




XIX


BRANDON was alone. The spinal chair had been set in the oriel that was
so dear to him, and now he was propped up, with a book in his hand and
his favorite view before him.

The vicar’s greeting was full of kindness, but the stricken man met it
with an air of pain, perplexity and secret antagonism.

“The very man I have been hoping to see,” he said in a rather faint
voice. And then he added, almost with distress, “I want so much to have
a talk with you about this miserable business.”

“Don’t let it worry you in any way, my dear fellow,” said the vicar in
a tone of reassurance. “Proper and ample provision can easily be made
for the poor man if we behave sensibly. At least Whymper thinks so.”

“Hidebound donkey! What has he to do with it?”

The abrupt querulousness of the tone was so unlike Brandon that it
rather disconcerted the vicar.

“I have always found Whymper a very honest man,” he said soothingly.
“And he is also a magistrate.”

“Oh, yes, a local _Shallow_.”

The vicar was hurt, but the high sense of duty was with him in his
task. And that task was to tell Brandon in a few concise words of Dr.
Parker’s visit, of his opinion of John Smith, and his views concerning
him.

“And I felt it my duty to come and tell you,” said the vicar, in a
slow, calm, patient voice, “that Parker will meet a specialist in
consultation. But the question now is, who shall it be? To my mind
the point does not arise, but Joliffe, who I am sorry to say is not
as helpful as he might be, is making difficulties. Parker would like
Murfin, but Joliffe thinks Moriarty. But Murfin or Moriarty, what does
it matter? They are both first-rate men; besides the case is so clear
that it doesn’t present the slightest difficulty. It is really a waste
of money to pay a big fee for a London opinion when a local man like
Sharling of Brombridge would do quite as well.”

Brandon shook his head. A look of grave trouble came into his eyes.
“No,” he said, “this is a case for the best man the country can
provide.”

“Well, you shall choose him, my dear fellow,” Mr. Perry-Hennington’s
air was all largeness and magnanimity. “Murfin or Moriarty, or why
not such a man as Birdwood Thompson? He is in quite the front rank,
I believe. But before you incur an expense that I’m convinced is
unnecessary, I should like you to realize my own position in the
matter. To my mind, it will be far kinder to have the man certified
and quietly removed, rather than ask the law to take a course which
may stir up local feeling in certain directions, and breed undesirable
publicity in certain newspapers. Still that is neither here nor there.
One is prepared to face all consequences, be what they may.”

“Mr. Perry-Hennington,” said Brandon in a hollow tone, “I can’t help
thinking that you are making a tragic mistake.”

“The matter hardly admits of discussion I’m afraid. My duty lies before
me. Cost what it may it will have to be done.”

“But what possible harm is the man doing?”

The vicar deprecated the question by spreading out his large, strong
hands. “We can’t go into that,” he said in a kind tone. “We don’t
see eye to eye. Believe me, a matter of this sort doesn’t admit of
discussion. Besides it will only excite you. A man has to act in these
things as his conscience directs.”

“Yes, of course. But with all submission, one should try to keep a
sense of proportion, shouldn’t one?”

“I fully agree.”

“Then why immure a constructive thinker?”

In spite of the watch he was keeping on himself the vicar caught up the
phrase almost with passion.

But Brandon held his ground. “In common fairness,” he said, “I feel you
ought to read his noble work before you take any action.”

“Words, words, words.”

“Here are words also.” Brandon indicated the open book beside him.

“The Bible!” The vicar could not conceal his surprise. It was almost
the last thing he expected to see in the hands of so distinguished a
skeptic.

Brandon was secretly amused by the air of sudden perplexity. “You see I
am making my soul,” he said.

The vicar was puzzled. It was hard to forbear from being gratified. But
fearing the ironical spirit of the modern questioner, he kept on his
guard. Brandon, he knew, had a secret armory of powerful weapons. A
primitive distrust of the intellect knew better than to engage him at
close quarters.

“Our friend, John Smith, has led me back to the Bible,” said Brandon,
with a simplicity which Mr. Perry-Hennington greatly mistrusted.

“John Smith!” The tone was frankly incredulous.

“Until the other day I had not opened it for twenty years. But that
wonderful work of his has suddenly changed the angle of vision. And in
order to read the future by the light of the past, which is the advice
he gives to the world, I return to the fount of wisdom.”

The vicar was more and more puzzled. To be led to the Bible by John
Smith was like being inducted by the devil into the use of holy water.
If Brandon was sincere he could only fear for the state of his mind. On
the other hand an intellectual bravo of the ultramodern school might be
luring one of simple faith into a dialectical trap. Therefore the vicar
hastened to diverge from a perilous subject.

The divergence, however, was only partial. All the vicar’s thought and
interest played upon this vital question of John Smith, and he was
there to carry it to a crucial phase. At this moment, he must see that
he was not sidetracked by one whom he could only regard, at the best,
as a dangerous heretic.

“Whom do you choose, my dear fellow?” said Mr. Perry-Hennington, after
a wary pause. “Murfin? Moriarty? Birdwood Thompson?”

“I decline to make a choice,” Brandon spoke bitterly. “It would be an
insult and a mockery.”

“But don’t you see that it offers a protection, a safeguard for the man
himself?”

“In the eyes of the law, no doubt. But, in my view, John Smith stands
above the law.”

“No human being stands above the law.”

“That is where I dissent.”

Brandon’s tone simply meant a deadlock. The vicar needed all his
patience to combat it. One thing was clear: a change for the worse had
set in. It would be an act of simple Christian kindness not to argue
with the poor dear fellow.

“Very well,” the vicar’s tone was soothing and gentle, “Joliffe shall
choose. He is acting for you in the matter.”

“I beg your pardon. No one is acting for me in this affair. I won’t
incur the humiliation of any vicarious responsibility.”

“But one understood from Joliffe that you would abide by the decision
of a London specialist.”

“That is not my recollection of the exact position I took up. In any
case, I withdraw from it now. Second thoughts convince me that you mean
to destroy a very exquisite thing. I am further convinced that as the
world is constituted at present you can work your will, if not in one
way, in another. History shows that. But it also shows that you will
only be successful up to a point. Immure the body of John Smith if you
must. Kill his soul if you can. In the meantime go your ways and leave
me to abide the issue.”

The vicar was distressed by this sudden flaming. He apologized with
Christian humility for having worried one in a delicate state of health
with a matter which, after all, did not concern him. Soothing the dear,
excitable fellow as well as he could, he prepared to withdraw from
the room. But Brandon was not in a mood to let this be the end of the
matter.

“Before you go,” he said, “I would like to speak of something else. It
has a bearing on the subject we have been discussing.”

Although conscience-bitten by the sudden recollection of his promise to
Millicent, the vicar allowed himself to be further detained.

“I have just had a visit from the new tenant of Longwood.”

“Yes, I met him in the avenue as I came here. He has very simply
invited me to dine with him on Wednesday.”

“Be sure you do. A very remarkable man. We had a most interesting talk.”

“A great scientist, I hear.”

“One of the forces of the material world. A modern Newton, the
discoverer of Murdwell’s Law.”

“Tell me, what is Murdwell’s Law exactly?”

“At present it can only be rendered in terms of the highest
mathematics, which I’m afraid is beyond a layman’s power. But Murdwell
himself has just told me that he expects soon to be able to reduce it
to a physical formula.”

“And if he does?”

“It will be the worst day this planet has known. For one thing it will
revolutionize warfare completely. Radioactivity will take the place of
high explosives. It may become possible to wipe out a city like London
in less than a minute. It may become possible to banish forever organic
life from a whole continent.”

“But surely that will be to abrogate the functions of the Creator.”

“Quite so. And science tells us that Man is his own Creator, and
that he has been millions of years in business. And now this simple,
gentle, peace-loving American of the Middle West comes along with the
information that, Man having reached the phase in which he bends the
whole force of his genius to destroy his own work, successes of that
kind are open to him beyond the dreams of his wildest nightmares. As
the learned professor said to me just now: ‘Any fool can destroy. We
are near the point where it will be possible for the infant puling in
the arms of its nurse to press a button and punch a hole through the
planet!’”

“No doubt he exaggerates.”

“He may. On the other hand he may not. He is a great and daring
thinker, and he declares there are hidden forces in the universe
that man is about to harness in the way he has already harnessed
electricity, which, by the way, less than a hundred years ago was a
madman’s dream.”

“I hear he is subsidized by the government.”

“He takes no payment for his services. He believes our cause to be that
of civilization. Two of his boys are with the French Army, as he says,
‘doing their bit to keep a lien on the future.’”

“His country can be proud of him.”

Brandon could not repress a smile. The assumption of the tone was so
typical of the man who used it that he was tempted to look at him in
his relation to those events which were tearing the world in pieces.
Had any man a right to sit in judgment on the actions of others in that
calm, confident way? There was something far down in Brandon which
asked the question, something deeper still which answered it. The
self-complacency of this sublime noodle was not a thing to smile at
after all; he had a sudden craving for a tomahawk.

“It seems to me,” said Brandon after a pause, “that modern materialism
has at last managed to produce the kind of man it has been looking for.
This charming church-going American says he hopes presently to be able
to establish war on a scientific basis. So far, he says, man has only
been toying with the subject.”

“If he can bring the end of this war a stage nearer, all honor to him,”
said the vicar in a measured tone.

“He certainly hopes to do that. He says that his committee of Allied
scientists, which sits every day in Whitehall, is already applying
Murdwell’s Law to good purpose. It has every hope of finding a formula,
sooner or later, which will put the Central Empires permanently out of
business.”

“Really!” said the vicar.

“He says that so awful are the potentialities of self-destruction
inherent in Murdwell’s Law that future wars may involve the planet,
Earth, in cosmic suicide.”

“Really!” said the vicar.

“He says that science sees already that warfare cannot remain in its
present phase. Moreover, at the present moment it is an interesting
speculation as to which side can first carry it a step further. Enemy
scientists are already groping in the direction of the new light.
They will soon have their own private version of Murdwell’s Law; they
know already the forces latent in it. If we are the first to find the
formula we may be able to say a long farewell to the Wilhelmstrasse,
and even to deep, strong, patient Germany herself. And if they find
it first it may be a case of ‘Good-by, Leicester Square,’ because the
first intimation the world may have is that there is a small island
missing in Europe.”

“Really!” said the vicar.

“It sounds fantastic. But there is not the slightest doubt that
Murdwell’s Law opens up a mental vista which simply beggars
imagination. And there is no doubt, in the opinion of its discoverer,
that by its means Man will get into touch with unknown elements capable
of sealing the doom of the group of things to which he belongs.”

“We’ll hope not,” said the vicar. “At any rate, if that is so, it seems
to me that Murdwell’s Law impinges upon the order of divine providence.”

“There we enter upon the greatest of all questions. Just now all creeds
are asking: What is Man’s relation to God and the universe? Theology
has one interpretation, science another. Which is right? Philosophy
says that each has a glimpse of the truth, yet it is now inclined
to believe that we have touched a new stratum which literally turns
all previous theories inside out. Of course, it is not so new as it
seems. Plato reached similar conclusions by a different road, but the
world of empirical science has hitherto been content to regard them as
brilliant but fantastic speculations. Gazelee Payne Murdwell claims to
have brought them within the region of hard fact; he says science and
philosophy are already half converted to his view. We enter a new era
of the world’s history in consequence, and very amazing manifestations
are promised us.”

“Whatever they may be,” said the vicar stoutly, “I will not allow
myself to believe that Man can abrogate the functions of the Deity.”

“But what are the functions of the Deity? Would you say it was the
exercise of those functions which saved Paris from being blown to
pieces by the Hun?”

“Undoubtedly!”

“And yet permitted him to sink the _Lusitania_?’

“Undoubtedly. Don’t let us presume to question that God had a reason
for his attitude in both cases.”

“Well, in my view I am bound to say that T. N. T. and the U-boat
abrogate the functions of the Deity in their humble way, just as
surely as Murdwell’s Law may expect to do in a higher one. However,
discussion is useless. We shall never agree. But if on Wednesday you
can persuade Professor Murdwell to talk, you may hear strange things.”

“No doubt he exaggerates,” said the vicar robustly. “It’s the way of
these inventive geniuses. On the other hand, should it seem good to the
Divine Providence to destroy all the inhabitants of this wicked planet,
let the will of God prevail. But in any case, my dear fellow, I hope
you will not allow the ideas of the American to excite you.”

“They are far from doing that, but it was very civil of a man like
Murdwell to take the trouble to come and see a man who couldn’t go and
see him. He is one of the forces of the modern world, and in the near
future he will be the problem for the human race.”

“It may be so,” said the vicar. “I know nothing of science. But to
return to this problem of John Smith. Shall we say Birdwood Thompson?
Parker is waiting to know?”

“As you please,” said Brandon in a voice of sudden exhaustion.

“Very well. I’ll telegraph. We must be scrupulously fair in the matter.
And now let us dismiss an unprofitable subject. I’m afraid you have
been talking too much.”

“A little too much, I’m afraid,” said Brandon rather feebly.

“Well, good-by, my dear fellow,” said the vicar heartily. “And forget
all about this tiresome business. It doesn’t in any way concern you if
only you could think so. Whatever happens, the man will be treated with
every consideration. As for Professor Murdwell, I’m afraid he draws the
long bow. These brilliant men of science always do. Good-by. And as I
go out I’ll ask the nurse to come to you.”




XX


IN the meantime in Dr. Joliffe’s summerhouse the pipe of peace was
being smoked. Dr. Joliffe’s cigars had a virtue of their own, and Dr.
Parker, who was no mean judge of such things, had rather weakly allowed
the flesh to conquer. Joliffe was a perverse fellow, but even he,
apparently, was not quite impossible. His cigars somehow just saved him.

The third whiff of an excellent Corona suddenly transformed Dr. Parker
into a man of the world.

“The fact is,” said he, “our friend here, like all country parsons who
have been too long in one place, is a bit too dogmatic.”

An answering twinkle came into the eye of Dr. Joliffe. Somehow the
admission seemed to clear the air considerably.

“He wants humoring.”

“No doubt. But this poor chap is as harmless as I am.”

“A good deal more harmless than you are Joliffe. But you know the sort
of man we have to deal with. And after all old Henny-Penny’s quite
right--in war time. You see this chap is not pulling his weight in
the boat. He’s a bad example. Our parson is rather down on him no
doubt; still, in the circumstances, he’s quite right to bring him under
control.”

“You think so?”

“It can do no harm at any rate.”

“But, you see, it’s going to upset the squire. And he’s such a good
chap that it seems a pity.”

“Well, it’s no use trying to please everyone.”

“Quite so.”

“Why not certify the fellow and have done with it?”

“I can’t, after what I said to Brandon.”

“Tell me, Joliffe, why does Brandon take such an interest in him?”

“Nay,” said Joliffe, “that’s more than I can fathom.”

“Do you think his mind has been affected by Gallipoli?”

“They seem to think so.”

“Do you?”

“I seem to notice a change coming over him. But it’s so very gradual
that one can hardly say what it may be.”

“At any rate it is not a good sign for a man like Brandon to be
wrapped up in such a fellow as John Smith.”

“There I entirely agree,” said Joliffe. “And to my mind that is the
worst feature of the whole affair.”

The two doctors exchanged their views at considerable length. And
when the vicar returned from Hart’s Ghyll, after an absence of more
than an hour, he found the moral temperature much more equable. In
fact the lion and the lamb were lying down together. Moreover, he had
only to make known his own proposal that Murfin and Moriarty should
be superseded in favor of Birdwood Thompson for this course to be
acceptable to both. Dr. Joliffe at once led his visitors to his study,
in order that a letter might be drawn up for the purpose of summoning
the eminent specialist.

It took some little time for this task to be performed. There were
niceties of professional phrasing to consider; also the nature of the
case called for a certain amount of discreet description. At last the
letter was written, and then Dr. Parker was reminded by the sight of
his car, which had come round from the vicarage, that he was urgently
due elsewhere.




XXI


PRESSED for time, Dr. Parker fled. But he took the letter with him in
order that he might post it in Brombridge, and so insure its earlier
delivery in London. As soon as Dr. Parker had gone the vicar made
a survey of the elements, and then set off at his best pace on a
ten-minute walk to his house.

In doing this he knew that he ran the risk of a soaking. Storm clouds
which had hovered all the afternoon were now massed overhead. Hardly
had he entered the village street, when he perceived large drops of
rain. But in his present frame of mind he did not feel like staying a
moment longer under Joliffe’s roof than he could help. He was still
seething within. He was still marveling at the crassness of certain of
his fellow creatures. The open defection of one whom he had counted a
sure ally was very hard to forgive.

However, by the time he had reached the edge of the common he realized
that he was in a fair way of being drenched to the skin; moreover the
rainstorms of the district, though often of great severity, did not
last long as a rule.

Near by was a thicket of well-grown trees, which at once lured the
vicar to accept their protection. As he crept under the branches
there came a play of lightning, followed by thunder in a series of
deafening crashes. Devoutly thankful that he had had the wit to gain
shelter he crouched low, turned up his coat collar and looked out at
the rain descending in a sheet. A hundred yards or so away, an old,
white-aproned village woman, very thinly clad, was struggling toward
her cottage. As she came near the priest’s stone in the middle of the
village green, a man without a hat, and no better protected from the
storm than herself, suddenly sprang up before her. In an instant he had
taken off his coat and placed it round her shoulders.

The old woman went slowly on toward her cottage, while the man stood
coatless in the rain. It did not seem to cause him any concern, he
seemed, in fact, almost to welcome the storm, as he stood erect in its
midst, the elements beating upon him, the thunder rolling over his
head. And the vicar, peering from his shelter, thought that once or
twice his right hand was raised as if he were in the act of speaking to
heaven.

The man was John Smith. The vicar was amazed; such sheer insensibility
to what was going on around was uncanny. Bareheaded, coatless, drenched
to the skin, the man scorned the shelter so close at hand. The first
thought that passed through the vicar’s mind was one of pity for the
man’s physical and mental state. But hard upon that emotion came regret
that the stubborn Joliffe was not also a spectator of the scene. Any
doubts he still held as to the man’s sanity must surely have been
dispelled.

A great wind began to roam the upper air. The lightning grew more
vivid, the thunder louder, the weight of rain still heavier. The vicar
crouched against the bole of the best tree. And as he did so, his
thoughts somehow passed from the poor, demented figure of fantasy still
before his eyes, to those overwhelming forces of nature in which they
were both at that minute engulfed.

Intellectually the vicar was a very modest man. Sometimes, it is true,
he had been tempted to ask himself poignant questions. But he had never
presumed to give an independent answer of his own. For him the solution
of the central mystery of man’s relation to the forces around him was
comprised in the word “Faith.”

But now that he was the witness of poor John Smith’s dementia, the
sense of human futility recurred to him. It needed a power of Faith
to relate that drenched scarecrow, a mere insect upon whom Nature was
wreaking a boundless will, to the cosmic march and profluence. For a
moment the vicar was almost tempted to deny the still, small voice
within and submit entirely to the judgment of the senses. His eyes,
his ears, his sense of touch assured him that the poor madman out in
the rain was lost in the sum of things. What relation could he have
to those majestic powers by whom he was buffeted? Surely that lone,
hapless figure was the symbol of Man himself.

And yet the act of devotion the man had just performed must have a
meaning. It was a mystery within a mystery. Of whom had this poor
blasphemer learned that trick; by what divine license did he practice
it? For nearly half an hour it continued to rain pitilessly, and during
that time the vicar searched and questioned his heart in regard to the
man before him. At last the storm subsided; he came out of his shelter
and went thoughtfully home. But in bed that night, when he closed his
eyes and tried to sleep, he found the image of John Smith printed
inside his eyelids.




XXII


THE next morning, when John Smith called as usual at Hart’s Ghyll with
his bunch of flowers, he was allowed once more to see his friend. The
stricken man received him in the library with the most affectionate
intimacy.

“My dear, dear fellow,” he said, “how good it is to see you. You bring
the light of the sun to this room whenever you enter it.”

The visitor took Brandon’s hand with the caressing touch of a woman.
“Dear friend,” he said, “I always pray that the light may accompany me
wherever I go.”

The simplicity of the man, which it would have been easy to misread,
had now, as always, a strange effect upon Brandon. And yet he was
heart-sore and miserable. The weight of sorrow now upon him seemed to
transcend all his other sufferings. A cruel sense of the futility of
his terrible sacrifice had overtaken him. What proof was there that
it had not been in vain? After all, what hope could there be for the
future of men; what was there to expect from a purblind, material
world? He was now in the throes of a cruel reaction. Somehow his talk
with the vicar had struck at his faith in his own kind.

He took no comfort from the thought that Mr. Perry-Hennington was a
profoundly stupid man. Turning his mind back, he saw the parson of
Penfold as the spiritual guide of the race of average men, of a race
which allowed itself to be governed by the daily newspaper, which in
one feverish hour threw away the liberties it had cost its father
hundreds of years to win. Prussia was being met with Prussia, Baal with
the image of Baal.

Throughout a wakeful night, that had been the thought in Brandon’s
heart. Behind all the swelling heroics and the turgid phrases of
organized opinion, was this Frankenstein monster. The world was moving
in a vicious circle. The public press had somehow managed to recreate
what it had set out to destroy. The question for Brandon now was, had
he been the victim of a chimera? In the course of a long night of
bitterness, the thought had taken root in him that all the blood and
tears humanity was shedding would merely fix the shackles more cruelly
on generations yet unborn.

This morning Brandon saw no hope for the ill-starred race of men. Hour
by hour his fever-tinged thoughts had flown to one for whom he had
conceived an emotion of the highest and purest friendship, to one whom
his fellows were seeking a means to destroy.

“I have been wondering,” said Brandon, “whether you will consent to
have your poem published? I know you are shy of print, but this is a
rare jewel, the heritage of the whole world.”

“Don’t let us talk of it just now.” There was a shadow upon the
eloquent face. “I have need of guidance. My poem, such as it is, is but
one aspect of a great matter. I pray that I may find a more universal
one.”

Brandon dissembled his surprise, but he could not bridle his curiosity.
“Your poem _is_ a great matter,” he said. “To me it is wonderful. You
call it ‘The Door.’ Why not let all the world pass through?”

“Such is my task, but I do not know that it can be fulfilled by the
printed word. There may be a surer way. The question I have to ask
myself is, can I do the Father’s will more worthily? By prayer and
fasting perhaps I may.”

“But the thing is so perfect. Why gild the lily?”

“It is only one of many keys, dear friend. It is not the Door itself.
It is no more than a stage in a long, long pilgrimage; no more than a
means to the mighty end that has been laid upon me.”

Brandon, however, had set his heart upon the poem’s publication. To him
it was a perfect thing. Moreover, he saw in it a vindication of its
author, a noble answer to those who were conspiring to destroy him.

Strangely, however, John was not to be moved from his resolve. And more
strangely still, as it seemed to Brandon, intimations had come to him
already of the terrible fate that was about to overtake him. “It has
been communicated to me that I am about to be called to a great trial,”
were the words he used.

Brandon, sick at heart, had hardly the courage to seek an explanation.
“You--you have been told that?” He scanned anxiously the face of the
man at his side.

“Yes,” was the answer. “The inner voice spoke to me last evening. I
don’t know when the blow will fall, or what fate awaits me, but a sword
hangs by a single hair above my head.”

“And--and you are not afraid?” To Brandon this calmness was almost
superhuman.

“I am not afraid. The souls of the just are in the hands of God. And
I ask you, my dear friend, to share my faith. You are one of two
witnesses to whom I have been allowed to reveal myself. The other is
an old woman who can no longer work with her hands. You have long given
her a roof for her head, and I have kept a loaf in her cupboard and
found her fire in the winter. But there is only the poorhouse for her
when I am taken, and I think she fears it.”

“Whatever happens, that shall not be her fate.”

“I will not thank so good a man. But it is your due that you should
know this.”

“It is my great privilege. Is there any other way in which I may hope
to be of use?”

“At the moment, none.” John Smith laid his hand on the arm of the
stricken man with a gesture of mingled pity and solicitude. “But a time
is surely coming when a heavy tax will be laid upon your friendship.”

“I cannot tell you how I shall welcome it.” As Brandon spoke he gazed
upward to the eyes of the man who bent over him. As he met those
large-pupiled orbs, a curious thrill passed through his frame. In the
sudden sweep of his emotion was an odd sense of awe.

“I foresee, dear friend, that you are about to be called to a hero’s
task.” The soft, low voice seemed to strike through Brandon as he lay.

“Whatever it may be, I accept it joyfully. In the meantime I can only
pray that I may stand worthy in the day of trial.”

“Of that there can be no doubt--if you will always remember that one
unconverted believer may save the whole world.”

For many days to come these cryptic words were to puzzle Brandon, and
to linger in his ears. But in the moment of their utterance he could
seek no elucidation. His whole soul was melted by a sense of awe. It
was as if a new, unknown power was beginning to enfold him.

John Smith kissed Brandon gravely on the forehead and then went away.
The stricken man was left in a state of bewildered perplexity. And a
heavier load of misery was now upon him than any he had known. A rare,
exquisite thing had been revealed to him in a miraculous way. It was
about to suffer a cruel fate, and he had not the power to save it.




XXIII


BRANDON was still brooding over a tragedy he could not avert when a
nurse came into the room. She was a practical, vigorous creature, plain
and clean of mind, and after a single shrewd glance at the patient she
proceeded to take his temperature with a clinical thermometer.

“Just as I thought.” An ominous head was shaken. “That man always has
a bad effect upon you. I shall have to forbid him seeing you in the
future.”

“What nonsense!” said Brandon.

“This speaks for itself.” The nurse held up the thermometer. “He always
puts you up to a hundred. You are nearly a hundred and one now, and
you’ll have to go to bed and stay there until you are down a bit.”

It was vain for Brandon to desist. He was at the mercy of Olympians who
did not hesitate to misuse their powers. He was whisked off to bed like
a naughty child, and the privilege of a further talk with John Smith
was withdrawn indefinitely. He protested strongly to the nurse and
bitterly to his wife, but he was told that it would not be safe to see
the young man again until he could do so without playing tricks with
his temperature.

Brandon fumed in durance for the rest of the day. The patience which
had borne him through all his trials threatened to desert him now. He
was tormented with the thought of his own helplessness. The recent
visit had moved Brandon to the very depths of his being, and the
longing to help John Smith escape the coil that fate was weaving now
burnt in his veins a living fire. As he lay helpless and overwrought,
on the verge of fever, the stupidities of the little world around him
were magnified into a crime for which humanity itself would have to pay.

The next morning, Wednesday, at eleven o’clock came Dr. Joliffe. The
higher medical science had begun to despair of ever restoring to
Brandon the use of his limbs, and he was now in the sole care of his
local attendant, who came to see him every other day.

Dr. Joliffe found the patient still keeping his bed by the orders of
the nurse. In the course of an uncomfortable night he had slept little,
and his temperature was still a matter for concern. Moreover, not the
nurse alone, but Mrs. Brandon also, had already delivered themselves
vehemently on the subject of John Smith.

For one reason or another Dr. Joliffe would have been very willing
just now to consign John Smith to limbo. Nor was this desire made
less when the patient, after being duly examined, reported upon, and
admonished, requested the nurse to withdraw from the room in order that
he might talk with the doctor privately.

Joliffe knew well enough what was coming. And he would have done much
to avoid further contact with a most unhappy subject, from which
consequences were flowing of an ever-increasing embarrassment. But
there was no means of escape. For Brandon, the subject of John Smith
had become almost an obsession; a fact which the doctor had begun to
realize to his cost.

“What steps have been taken?” Brandon began as soon as they were free
of the nurse’s presence.

“Steps?” Joliffe fenced a little.

“In regard to John Smith.” There was a sudden excitement in the bright
eyes. “He’s in my mind night and day. I can’t bear the thought that he
should be destroyed.”

“I’m sorry to say that Birdwood Thompson can’t come here.” The
professional voice was dulcet and disarming. “He’s in a very bad state
of health and giving up practice. His second boy went down on the
_Victorious_, and his eldest was killed the other day in France, so I
suppose that may have something to do with it.”

“Well, what is being done?”

“As you ask the question,” was the cautious reply, “we have agreed upon
Murfin. Personally, I don’t think he’s as good as Moriarty or the other
man, but we wrote to him in order to save trouble.”

“In order to save trouble!” Brandon gasped. “Save trouble in a matter
of this kind?”

“Certainly. And we are all of us very anxious that you should not worry
over it any more.”

“But--don’t you see--what a terrible thing it is?”

“Not exactly terrible.” Dr. Joliffe spoke gravely but cheerfully.
“Quite an everyday occurrence, you know, if one looks at it in the
right way.”

“An everyday occurrence--if--one--looks--at--it--in--the right way!”

“Undoubtedly. Cases of this kind are always arising. Whatever view one
may take of the man, he is certainly on the border line; therefore,
whether he’s certified or not is merely a question of expediency. And
what I have to point out to you is that in the last resort, as the
world is just now, with all these public safeguards in operation the
final decision will be taken by the authorities.”

“How cruel!” said Brandon, with growing excitement.

“Not necessarily cruel,” said Dr. Joliffe in a mellifluous tone.

“To think of our local _Shallows_ sitting in judgment on the first
spirit of the age!”

“The irony of circumstances.”

“No.” Brandon’s eyes were hectic. “It takes more than two thousand
years to change the world. An old story is being retold with a few
modern improvements. I see that. But, Joliffe, I believe you to be
a just man, and I count on your help. For the love we both bear the
Republic, I want you to put up a fight for John Smith.”

“There, my dear fellow, calm yourself,” said the doctor soothingly. “I
will undertake to see that no injustice is done in the matter.”

“In other words, that he is not molested.”

“That is beyond my power, because, as I say, the Bench will move if we
don’t.”

“Then leave it to them to take the first step. And in the meantime
we’ll get legal advice.”

“Murfin comes down on Friday.”

“Easy to stop him.”

“The vicar won’t consent to that, I’m afraid.”

“No, I suppose not. But if you love this country you will do your best
to restrain a profoundly stupid man.”

Plain, common-sensible Dr. Joliffe thought the line of argument a
little high-flown, and said so in a tone of scrupulous kindness.

“I don’t overstate,” said Brandon. “Let me explain my meaning. The
Republic is rising to a height of moral grandeur that few would have
dared to prophesy for her. But as always, there is a flaw in her armor.
The enemies of the light are seeking it, and if they should find it
there is absolutely nothing between this world and barbarism.”

“I’m afraid I don’t follow.” Dr. Joliffe shook a grave head.

“I can tell you that she is about to treat her most august citizen as
Rome, her great prototype, treated Another.”

Dr. Joliffe continued to shake his head. Not only was he puzzled, he
was rather distressed by such an extravagant statement. “How I wish I
could get your mind off this subject!” he said.

“You must not hope to do that,” said Brandon. “It is decreed that I
should lie supine, a helpless log, while night and day my brain is
turned into a weaver’s shuttle. I can do nothing, yet I somehow feel
that the high gods have called me to do everything. This man has no
other friend, and it is for that reason, Joliffe, that I ask you to
stand my proxy in his defense.”

“But I assure you no defense is possible,” said Joliffe, with a feeling
of growing distress.

“Let us brief counsel.”

“No purpose will be served. As you know, the vicar is a most stubborn
man. And if he doesn’t succeed one way he will another. If we doctors
are obdurate he will turn to the Bench, and if the Bench won’t oblige
he’ll have recourse to the military.”

“It hardly seems credible.”

“I agree. But that’s the man. And the worst of it is that from his own
point of view in a time like the present he may be perfectly right.”

“I refuse to believe that he can be right at any time.”

“But surely, a man who sides openly with the enemy ought not to be at
large.”

“Has he gone beyond what Jesus would have done in such circumstances?”

“Hardly a practical analogy, I’m afraid. In any case, John Smith is
not Jesus, even if his half-witted old mother may think so. The law is
bound to regard him as a crack-brained rustic, and in my humble opinion
anyone who tries to persuade it that the poor fellow is anything else,
will be very unwise.”

“In other words you decline your help?”

“Only because,” said Dr. Joliffe, “I now see the hopelessness of
the position. Knowing John Smith as I do, I consider that Mr.
Perry-Hennington has made a mountain out of a molehill. Of course he’s
a fanatic on the subject, but the poor, feckless chap is amenable to
the law as it exists at present, and he has no means of escape. It
will be far wiser, believe me, to accept the inevitable. All that his
friends can hope to do is to make things as comfortable for him as
possible.”

“That shall be done at any rate,” said Brandon. “It is
Perry-Hennington’s intention, I presume, to have him sent to the county
asylum.”

“It is the only place for him, I’m afraid. But, of course, even there
he will be extremely well treated.”

“I don’t question that, but assuming it to be his destination, I should
like him to live in comfort and dignity. Wouldn’t it be possible for
him to go to some such place as Wellwood Sanatorium?”

“Well, of course,” said Dr. Joliffe, “that is almost a question of
ways and means. Wellwood is an ideal place for the poor fellow. But of
course it is out of the question.”

“Why?”

“The expense.”

“No matter what it may be,” said Brandon, “I shall be only too happy to
bear it.”

“It will not be less than five hundred a year.”

“If it were twice as much I should count it a high privilege to be
allowed to do that for him.”

Dr. Joliffe shook the head of a prudent man over this piece of
quixotism. “Very generous of you,” he said, “but they look after their
patients so extraordinarily well at Broad Hill, that I am sure this
expense is quite unnecessary.”

Brandon, however, stuck to his plan.

He had now made up his mind that if the worst happened, Wellwood should
be the home of John Smith.

“Very well.” Dr. Joliffe saw that a purposeless opposition could do
no good. “If the necessity arises it shall be arranged for him to go
there. And now I want you to forget all about this miserable matter.
Dismiss it entirely from your thoughts.”

“Impossible,” said Brandon. “We are deliberately closing the Door.”

“Closing the door?”

“For the human race.”

The doctor looked sadly, uncomprehendingly at his patient. “I don’t
understand,” he said.

“Of course you don’t, my dear friend. It is not to be expected that
you should. And at present I can’t enlighten you.”

Dr. Joliffe shook a rather ominous head. Brandon was a mass of morbid
fancies and illusions; and the doctor was very far indeed from being
satisfied with the state in which he found him. He felt it to be his
duty to give a little serious admonition, and then he withdrew from the
room. The nurse was waiting in the dressing room adjoining, and to her
he confided certain misgivings. The patient must stay in bed, he must
not read, he must avoid all things likely to cause worry or excitement.
And beyond everything else his mind must be kept from the subject of
John Smith.




XXIV


IN the evening of the same day the vicar dined at Longwood. Edith
accompanied him. Mr. Murdwell had the forethought to send a car for his
guests, so that a mile journey on a wet night was made _en prince_.

Mr. Perry-Hennington was not in a mood for dining out. A certain matter
was still in abeyance, and it seemed to hang over him like a cloud. He
felt it was weak and illogical to allow such an affair, which was one
of simple duty, to disturb him. But somehow he was far more upset by it
than he cared to own.

Fortunately, the evening made no great demand upon the guests. Indeed,
it proved to be an agreeable relaxation. There was nothing in the
nature of a party, a fact of which the vicar had been expressly
apprised beforehand; five people, to wit; Mr. Murdwell, his wife and
daughter, Edith and himself.

Mr. Perry-Hennington was well able to appreciate a good dinner. And
in spite of his present rather disgruntled state, he did not remember
ever to have had a better in the course of many years of dining out.
The perfection of Parisian cooking allied to dry champagne was without
a suspicion of war time economy; and though the lavishness of the menu
did not march with the vicar’s recent pronouncements, it was hardly
possible to rebuke it in the present case. Besides, these people were
American; their wealth was said to be beyond the dreams of avarice; and
to judge by the frame in which they were set, there seemed to be little
need for them to economize in anything.

The vicar confided to Edith afterward that he had found their
new neighbors “most entertaining.” And this was strictly true.
Intellectually he was not quite so ossified as his theological outfit
made him appear. Behind the arrogance, the dogmatism, the closed mind,
was a certain shrewd man-of-the-worldliness, conceived on broad and
genial lines, which is seldom lacking in the English upper class. And
of that class Mr. Perry-Hennington was not an unworthy specimen. He
could tell a story with anyone; he knew, had known, and was connected
with many persons whom the world regards as interesting; he was
traveled, sociable, distinguished in manner, and the impression he made
upon his host and upon his hostess more particularly--which after all
was the more important matter--was decidedly favorable.

Mr. Murdwell was a man of international reputation, though sprung from
quite small beginnings in his native Ohio. And behind the sophisticated
naïveté of Jooly his wife, and Bud his daughter, was a well-marked
tendency to think in dukes and duchesses. They had known them on the
Riviera, had studied them in hotels and country houses in divers lands,
and there was little doubt that sooner or later Bud would burgeon into
a princess.

The _famille_ Murdwell had traveled far in a very short time. Its rise
had been one of the romances of scientific and social America. The
genius of Murdwell _père_, to which the whole world was now paying
tribute, had, among many other things, raised a palace on Fifth Avenue,
acquired property on Long Island, and a villa in Italy. To these was
now added an English country house “for the duration of the war.”

This was the first appearance of the Murdwell ladies in the United
Kingdom, and they were immensely interested in it. They had only been
three months in the country and everything was new. Hitherto their
knowledge of it had been based on the Englishman abroad, the reports
of travelers, and the national output of fiction. As a consequence,
they frankly owned that they had rather underrated it. So far they had
been agreeably surprised to find it not altogether a one-horse affair.
It is true they had arrived in the island at an exceptional time, but
somehow it was more a going concern than they had been led to expect.

For instance, when they were told that the local parson and his
daughter were coming to dinner, they had good-humoredly resigned
themselves to an evening of acute boredom. But one of the social
peculiarities of England, as far as they had seen it at present,
was that things are always just a bit better than you look for--the
evening, when it came, was really so much more entertaining than a
similar function would have been in Kentucky, which they took as the
equivalent for Sussex.

On sight, the meager, high-shouldered, rather frumpish, rather myopic
Miss Thing, with the double-barreled name and the tortoise-shell
spectacles, which she wore with effect, promised to be all that the
lawless fancy of Bud and Jooly had painted her. But that was a first
view. By the time dinner was over they had found things in common with
her, and before the evening was out they were more inclined to sit
at her feet than she was to sit at theirs. Their wonderful food and
wine, their clothes and their surroundings, Bud’s pearls and Jooly’s
diamonds, and their talk of Prince This and the Marquis So-and-So
seemed to have not the slightest effect upon her. She took everything,
Bud and Jooly included, so very much for granted, that their curiosity
was piqued. Her dress was worth about a shilling a yard, her hair
was done anyhow, her features did not conform to their idea of the
beautiful, yet she was not in the least parochial, and both ladies
agreed, that had you searched America from the east coast to the west
it would have been hard to find anything quite like her.

The vicar puzzled them even more. They were not able to range him at
all. Perhaps the thing which impressed them most was “that he didn’t
show his goods in the window.”

Indeed, this fact may have struck Mr. Murdwell himself. For as soon
as the meal was under way he began to discuss, with a frankness and
a humor to which his guests didn’t in the least object, the English
custom of “not showing their goods in the window.”

“And a very bad one, too,” said Mr. Murdwell, raising his glass. “To my
mind it’s one of the reasons that’s brought this war about.”

The vicar asked for enlightenment.

“If your diplomacy had said: ‘Now look here, Fritz, old friend, if you
don’t try to be a little gentleman and keep that torch away from the
powder keg you’ll find big trouble,’ you wouldn’t have had to send for
me to put the Central Empires out of business.”

“Nothing could have prevented this war,” said the vicar in a deep tone.
“It was inevitable.”

“I am not sure that we shall agree about that,” said Mr. Murdwell
coolly. “If you had let them know the strength of your hand they would
never have dared to raise you.”

The vicar shook his head in strong dissent.

“This trouble goes back some way,” said Mr. Murdwell. “It was in the
sixties that you first took to giving people the impression that they
could make doormats of you. And then came the Alabama arbitration
business in which you curled up at our big talk. We said, ‘England’s a
dud,’ and we’ve been saying it ever since. And why? Because like friend
Fritz and all the rest of the push, in diplomacy we take moderation for
weakness.”

“Would you have our diplomacy always in shining armor?” said the vicar.

“No I wouldn’t. But there’s the golden mean. Think of the way you let
Bismarck put his thumb to his nose.”

“But that’s an old story.”

“The historian of the future will have to tell it, though. It seems to
me that the world has a pretty strong complaint against you. You’ve
underplayed your hand a bit too much. If you had been the Kingpin of
Europe, as you ought to have been, and kept the other scholars in their
places, things might have been different.”

This airy dogmatism amused the vicar. But in most other people it would
have annoyed him extremely.

“Of course I can’t agree,” he said mildly. “I am glad to say we don’t
regard this war as a material issue. For us it is a conflict between
right and wrong.”

“Quite so,” said Mr. Murdwell. “And I’ve already figured that out for
myself and that’s why I am here. If I criticize it’s in the spirit
of friendship. In this war you’ve gone big. The fact is, you are a
bigger proposition than outsiders thought. And the longer I stay
here the sharper it bites me. Nobody knows what your resources are.
Take our neighbor at Hart’s Ghyll. When I went the other day to make
friends with him, it took my breath away to think of a man like that
volunteering as a tommy to be frizzled in Gallipoli.”

“But why shouldn’t he,” said the vicar, “if he felt it to be his duty?”

“As you say, why not? But it’s large--for a man like that.”

“Surely not more so for him than for anyone else.”

“There we shan’t agree. There’s a kind of man who can’t keep out of a
scrap wherever one happens to be going. And in these islands you’ve got
more of that sort to the square mile than anywhere else I’ve visited,
although I’ve not yet seen the Basutos. But Gervase Brandon is not of
that type. War is against every instinct that man’s got. He hates it
with every fiber of his nature.”

“There are many thousands like him,” said the vicar; “many thousands
who have simply given their lives--and more than their lives--in a just
quarrel.”

“I know. But the quarrel was not his, and he didn’t make it. And it was
not as if, like the Belgians, the French, and the Russians, he had the
Hun on his doorstep. It would have been quite easy for a man like that
to say: ‘Leave it to the British Navy. Sooner or later they are bound
to clear up the mess.’”

“He was too honest to do that,” said the vicar. “He saw that a test
case had arisen between right and wrong, between God and Antichrist,
and he simply went and did his duty.”

“Well, I can only say,” Mr. Murdwell rejoined, “that when I saw him the
other day he seemed to believe in neither.”

“That’s because you don’t really know him. Just now, it is true, he is
in rather a disturbed state mentally. He has always had a skeptical
mind, and there have been times when I’ve been tempted to think that he
gave it too much latitude. And just now he is suffering a bad reaction
after the horrors he’s been through. And of course he has had to give
up the hope of ever walking again. But whatever the opinions of such a
man may be, it is only right and fair to judge him by his actions.”

“Yes, he’s made a big sacrifice. And the tragedy of it is he feels now
that he’s made it in vain.”

“His mental health is not what it might be just now, poor fellow. He
has said things to me about Prussia winning, even if she loses and so
on, which I know he cannot really believe.”

“Why not?”

“Because Gervase Brandon is too true an Englishman ever to doubt the
spirit of the race. He is depressed just now about a very trivial
matter. He has magnified it out of all proportion, whereas had he been
fit and well he would not have given it a second thought. No, Gervase
Brandon is not the man to despair of the Republic. He is part and
parcel of England herself, flesh of her flesh, bone of her bone.”

“I see he’s all that. In fact he belongs to one of your first families,
with the most beautiful place on the countryside, and the _manes_ of
his ancestors, who went to the Crusades, all around him. No, I suppose
he couldn’t help doing as he did, if you come to figure it out.”

“He was without a choice in the matter as he freely admits.”

“And yet that man’s a highbrow of highbrows. His knowledge amazed
me--not on his own subject, of which he didn’t speak, and I didn’t
either, because I know nothing about it, but on my own--on which I
claim to know just a little more than anyone else.”

“On the subject of Murdwell’s Law?” said the vicar with an air of keen
interest.

But dinner was now at an end, and as the inexhaustible subject of
Murdwell’s Law was at all times a little too much for the ladies of
the house, they made good their escape before its discoverer could
hoist himself upon a theme which promised to revolutionize the world of
physical science.




XXV


“PLATO apart,” said Mr. Murdwell, as soon as Bud, Edith and Jooly had
fled, “or whatever our neighbor’s secret vice may be, he’s got the
strongest brain I’ve come up against lately.”

“I’m surprised to hear you say that,” said the vicar. “Of course he’s
by way of being a scholar, a poet, an independent thinker, and all that
sort of thing, but since he’s been knocked out I’m afraid he can never
be the man he was.”

Mr. Murdwell confessed to surprise also. “I don’t know what he may have
been,” he said, “before he went to Gallipoli; I can only say that when
I made his acquaintance the other day, it seemed a great privilege to
talk to him.”

“Very interesting to know that,” said the vicar.

“He’s the only layman I’ve met who could grasp, on sight, the principle
on which Murdwell’s Law depends. And more than that. When by his
request I explained to him as briefly as I could the theory of the
whole thing, he laid his finger at once on the weak link in the chain.
I could hardly believe that he hadn’t a regular scientific training,
and that he hadn’t made researches of his own into radioactivity.”

“He probably has.”

“He says not. And he knew nothing of my theory, but he said at once
that I had only to restate my formula to alter the nature of war
altogether.”

“And is that true?”

“Not a doubt of it. That’s why I’m here, and incidentally that’s why I
have such a queer-looking butler. You noticed him, no doubt?”

The vicar had.

“I’ll tell you a little secret. That man is one of New York’s smartest
detectives, and he never lets me out of his sight.”

“Really!” said the vicar, drawing warily at a very large cigar.

“You see, at present it’s a nice question whether certain people can
hand Gazelee Payne Murdwell his medicine before he hands them theirs.
That’s what it all boils down to, you know.”

“Really!” said the vicar.

“If Mr. Murdwell with the help of his committee of Allied scientists
can solve the problem of restating his formula in terms of atomic
energy, the near future will be full of perplexity for this planet.”

“Do I understand,” said the vicar, drawing at his cigar, “that you are
trying some terrible experiment?”

“You may take it that it is so. And we are already causing sleepless
nights in certain quarters. The next few years may see warfare of a
very different kind.”

“But surely,” said the vicar, “every law, human and divine, forbids
further diabolism?”

“Nothing is forbidden to science. It works miracles. And it is merely
at the threshold of its power.”

“Yet, assuming, Mr. Murdwell,” said the vicar solemnly, “that your
theory is correct and that you are able to do all this, what do you
suppose will be the future of the human race?”

Mr. Murdwell did not answer the question at once. When answer he did,
it was in a voice of much gravity. “There we come up against something
that won’t bear looking at. Strictly speaking, the human race has no
future. Unless another spirit comes into the world the human race is
doomed.”

“Undoubtedly,” said the vicar.

“Science can destroy organic life quicker than nature can replace it.
And what it does now is very little compared to what it may do a few
years hence.”

“Quite so,” said the vicar.

“The vistas opened up by Murdwell’s Law in the way of self-immolation
don’t bear thinking about. A time is coming when it may be possible to
sweep a whole continent bare of life from end to end.”

“And that, my friend, is a logical outcome of materialism, the negation
of God.”

“Not a doubt of it,” said Mr. Murdwell, in his dry way. “It seems to me
that some of you gentlemen in broadcloth will soon have to think about
putting in a bit of overtime.”




XXVI


GOING home with Edith in his host’s car, the vicar was thoughtful and
depressed. He had enjoyed his evening, he had been entertained, even
exhilarated by it, yet in a curious, subtle way it had shown him the
writing on the wall. His host was a portent. Regard as one would this
lean-faced, church-going American, he was a very sinister phenomenon.
The vicar had little or no imagination, but he saw that Mr. Murdwell’s
conclusions were inescapable.

For the next few days, however, Mr. Perry-Hennington was not able to
give much attention to the doom of mankind. There were matters nearer
at hand. He led a busy life in his parish, and in the larger parish
of his local world. A mighty sitter on committees, a born bureaucrat,
it was hardly his fault that he was less a spiritual force than a man
of business. He was an extremely conscientious worker, never sparing
himself in the service of others, yet that service connoted the common
weal rather than the personal life.

In the course of a week a very trying matter came to a head. While it
was maturing the vicar kept his own counsel very strictly. He did not
go near Hart’s Ghyll, nor did he mention the subject to Edith. But
one evening he dined three quarters of an hour earlier than usual,
and then as the shadows were deepening upon Ashdown he took his hat
and made his way to the common along the familiar path. As he came to
Parson’s Corner, the village name for the lane’s debouch to the green,
he stopped and looked furtively about. By the priest’s stone, still
clearly visible in the evening half-light, a slight, frail, bareheaded
figure was kneeling as if in prayer. The vicar took out his watch and
consulted it anxiously, and then he scanned all points of the compass
with an air of painful expectancy. Careful arrangements had been made
with the proper authorities and disagreeable, even repugnant as was the
whole matter, he felt it to be his duty to see them carried out.

The shadows grew deeper upon Ashdown. At last there came a distant
crunch of gravel, and the vicar perceived a closed motor car creeping
up stealthily from the village and past the widow’s cottage. As it
came slowly toward him round the bend in the road he hailed it with
a wave of the hand. It stopped within a few yards and two burly,
sinister-looking men got out.

“Good evening, sir,” said the foremost of these.

Involuntarily the vicar held up a finger.

“He’s there,” he whispered. And he pointed to the figure kneeling by
the stone. He then added in a voice of deepening emotion, “I trust you
will not use any kind of violence.”

There was no need to do so, for it proved an extremely simple matter.
Yet one witness of it was never to forget the scene that followed.
Very cautiously the two men crept across the grass, while the vicar,
unwilling to be seen by the victim, concealed himself in a thicket near
by. From his ambush he saw the man rise to his feet at the approach of
his captors, he saw his calm, fixed look, and he heard the singular
words proceed from his lips, “Father, forgive them; for they know not
what they do.”

A feeling of indignant horror swept through Mr. Perry-Hennington. He
could only interpret the speech as one more atrocious blasphemy, for he
had caught the strange upward look, as if to the God in the sky, which
had accompanied the words. Somehow the gesture had revolted him, yet
in another in such circumstances it would have been sublime. And the
almost beautiful humility of the man walking passively between his
captors through the summer twilight to his doom, with such words on his
lips, such thoughts in his heart, filled the vicar with an odd conflict
of sensations.

The man entered the car with the same curious air of submission. From
his ambush the vicar watched it turn and go swiftly away, past the
widow’s cottage; and then faint of soul, but sustained by a sense of
duty, he walked slowly down the road as far as Mrs. Bent’s. To that
simple dame, who opened the door to his knock, he said: “Kindly tell
your neighbor, Mrs. Smith, that John may be late for his supper, and
that if he is not home by ten o’clock he may not return tonight.”

Anxiously pondering whether he had taken the wisest and gentlest means
of breaking the news to an invalid woman, Mr. Perry-Hennington returned
to the vicarage. He passed a wakeful and unhappy night, in which he was
troubled by many things; and at luncheon next day, in the course of a
scene with Edith they gained intensity.

“Did you know, father,” she said in a tone of acute distress, “that
John Smith was removed last evening without the slightest warning?”

The vicar admitted that he was aware of the fact.

“And do you know,” said Edith, in a voice of growing emotion, “that
the shock killed his mother?”

“Killed his mother!” Mr. Perry-Hennington heard that news for the first
time. “The old lady is dead!”

“She died last night.”

The vicar was much upset. He did not speak for some time, but at last
he said: “Someone has blundered. I warned her neighbor, Mrs. Bent, to
be particularly careful how she broke the news to her. I was at pains
to choose Mrs. Bent, a sensible woman whom I thought I could trust. I
felt the shock would be less if the news came from a neighbor instead
of from me. But I see”--bitterness mingled now with the concern in the
vicar’s tone--“that it would have been far wiser had I taken the whole
responsibility upon myself.”

“I’m not sure that it would,” said Edith. “Mrs. Bent says the poor
thing knew what had happened without being told.”

“She couldn’t have known anything of the kind. That’s quite impossible.
Every precaution was taken to spare her a shock. I saw to it myself
that all the arrangements were properly carried out. Last evening at
dusk a car with two attendants from Wellwood Sanatorium drove up to the
common, popped the poor fellow inside and took him away without a soul
in the village being the wiser. I was there and saw the thing done.
It went without a hitch. No one was by, that I will swear to. And then
I went to Mrs. Bent and I said: ‘Kindly tell Mrs. Smith that John may
be late for his supper, and that if he is not home by ten o’clock he
may not return tonight.’ Not another word was said. Ever since I got
the magistrates’ order I have given the matter anxious consideration.
The details of the plan were most carefully thought out in order to
spare the poor old woman as much as possible, and to defeat public
curiosity. Moreover, I am quite sure that unless Mrs. Bent exceeded her
instructions, which is hardly likely to have been the case, the poor
old thing could not have died from shock.”

“Mrs. Bent’s own version,” said Edith, “is that as soon as she entered
the cottage and before she spoke a word, Mrs. Smith said to her:
‘Neighbor, you’ve come to tell me that they’ve taken my son. I shall
never see him again this side the Resurrection. But I am not afraid.
The God of Righteousness has promised to take care of me.’ Mrs. Bent
was quite astonished. She didn’t know what was meant.”

“How _could_ Mrs. Smith have known? Who could have told her?”

“She said to Mrs. Bent that God Himself had appeared to her. Mrs. Bent
saw that she was sinking even then. Dr. Joliffe was sent for at once,
but before he could get there Mrs. Smith was dead.”

The vicar was deeply moved by the tragic story. It was a sequel which
he had not been able to foresee. The swiftness of the stroke in a
measure softened the terrible sense of direct responsibility; none the
less he was much upset.

As for Edith, the sequence of events had filled her with an emotion
little short of horror. It was in her voice and her eyes as she now
discussed them. A feeling of intolerable pain came upon her as she
realized what a very important part in the tragedy she had played. It
was her complaint against John Smith which lay at the root of all.

Father and daughter were very unhappy. Edith was inclined to blame
herself more than she blamed the vicar. Her loyal nature was capable of
great generosity, and it showed itself now in taking the chief share of
the catastrophe upon herself. She was bound to believe that her father
had taken a greatly exaggerated view of John Smith’s heresies, but his
sincerity was beyond question. The vicar’s zeal had wrought irreparable
harm, but knowing him for the man he was, it was impossible to blame
him.

As soon as luncheon was over the vicar set out for Dr. Joliffe’s. He
was a man of strong, imperious will, and in this sudden flux of events
he felt called to exercise it to the full. Had he done right? In spite
of a limited horizon, in spite of a fixed determination not to allow
himself a doubt in the matter, he was unable to prevent a sinister
little demon leaping into his brain as he crossed the village green,
and saw on the one hand a deserted pile of stone, on the other the
lowered blinds of the widow’s cottage.

It was futile to ask the question now. He could not call the dead
to life. Nor could he revoke the processes of the law. John Smith
was under lock and key at Wellwood Asylum for the good of the state.
Armed with the opinion of Dr. Parker and Dr. Murfin, a Welbeck Street
specialist, it had not been a difficult matter to convince the county
bench that the realm would be the safer for a measure so drastic. But
was it? All the vicar’s power of will was needed to allay the horrid
demon voice. In fact he had not quite succeeded by the time he entered
Dr. Joliffe’s gate.

As was to be expected, Joliffe had scant consolation to offer. “_Tu
l’as voulu, Georges Dandin_,” was his attitude. The vicar had shown
himself an obstinate, narrow man, and even if absolute sincerity and
transparent honesty formed his excuse, somehow it was not an easy one
to accept.

“Pity you didn’t take advice,” Joliffe ventured to remark.

“I don’t reproach myself,” said the vicar stiffly. “It had to be done.
The public interest called for it. But I wish that old woman could have
been spared the shock. Every precaution was taken, the removal was most
carefully planned, the whole thing went without a hitch. I can’t think
how the news got out.”

Dr. Joliffe confessed that he was equally at a loss. He had questioned
Mrs. Bent closely upon the matter, and she had declared that John’s
mother had said that God had told her something terrible was going to
happen to her son. He had told her also that they were about to be
parted, and that she would never see him again in her present life.

“An amazing prepossession,” said the vicar.

Dr. Joliffe was inclined to consider it a remarkable piece of
clairvoyance.

“I was not aware that she laid claim to powers of that kind,” said the
vicar.

“Nor I,” said the doctor. “Of course she was always an unusual sort of
woman, and deeply religious.”

“Evidently there was a great bond of sympathy between her and her son.”

Dr. Joliffe agreed. There was reason, also, to believe that the son was
a man of unusual powers.

“Why do you think that?” said the vicar sharply.

“It is Brandon’s opinion.”

The vicar shook a grave head. “I’m sorry to say that Brandon’s opinion
is not conclusive, poor fellow. He is very far from being the man he
was. Between ourselves I fear his mind is going.”

The doctor was loth to admit so much. He greatly feared for Brandon,
it was true; moreover John Smith had gained such an intellectual
ascendancy over him that it seemed to point to the vicar’s conclusion;
at the same time Joliffe was unwilling to believe that Brandon’s
estimate of the man’s genius was wholly the fruit of aberration.

“But,” rejoined the vicar, “Brandon is a very highly educated man. And
a highly educated man has no right to such an opinion.”

“Well, you know, when I was in Brombridge the other day I met old
Dunn, the high master of the grammar school where John Smith got his
education. I asked him if he remembered him.”

“Well?”

“Not only did he remember him, but he said that John Smith was by far
the most remarkable boy who had ever passed through his hands.”

“Then why didn’t Dunn make something of him?”

“Because the lad’s health forbade hard regular study. Otherwise he must
have gone far.”

“That is more than one can believe.”

“I can only say that Dunn is reckoned a first-rate judge of a boy’s
possibilities.”

“Unduly partial to his own pupils I believe. It was on his advice and
due to his interference that my gardener’s eldest boy took his law
final and became a solicitor, and I felt obliged to part with a good
servant in consequence.”

“This poor fellow is hardly a pupil to be proud of. Dunn says he looks
upon it as the tragedy of his own scholastic life that such powers as
John Smith’s have borne no fruit. He had the most original mind of any
boy he has known.”

“In other words the most cranky mind,” said the vicar impatiently. “I
believe he has suffered all his life from hallucinations.”

“Dunn didn’t say that.”

“Had he heard of the course we were taking?”

“He didn’t mention the matter and I was careful not to refer to it. But
I won’t answer for Parker.”

“Parker promised not to speak of it to anyone. It is known to Whymper
and Jekyll and one other magistrate, and I believe was mentioned to
General Clarke at the Depot, but in the public interest it was thought
advisable not to let it go farther. Not that it really matters. The
man is of no importance anyway, and he is far better off where he now
is. One will always regret the old mother, but the man himself will be
extremely well cared for at a place like Wellwood.”

“No doubt,” said Dr. Joliffe rather drily.

“There again Brandon has behaved quixotically. After all, this man
belongs to the working class. He would have been quite well looked
after at the county asylum at Broad Hill, where such people are taken
care of at the public charge. Still, that was done on your authority,
Joliffe.”

“Brandon insisted that it should be done.”

“Well, it all goes to show that the dear fellow is not the man he was.
Of course he’s rich, but it will cost him at least five hundred a year
for an indefinite period to keep this man at Wellwood.”

“I pointed that out to him. But he had fully made up his mind. And
he was so upset by the whole affair that it seemed wise not to raise
difficulties.”

“All very well. But I think my niece should have been consulted.
However--there it is! But it’s pure quixotism to say the least. By the
way, does Brandon know what happened yesterday?”

“He knew nothing when I saw him this morning.”

“How is he?”

“Still confined to his room with lingering traces of a temperature.”

“Had he heard that Murfin’s report was unfavorable?”

“He takes it for granted.”

“Takes it for granted! Pray why should he? I hope he doesn’t think that
Murfin is not entirely impartial and dependable.”

“He has nothing against Murfin personally.” There was a gleam of malice
in Joliffe’s eye. “But he says it is too much to hope for fair play for
John Smith in such a world as the present.”

“There speaks a disordered mind.” Heat was in the vicar’s tone. “We
have taken every possible precaution. Brandon _must_ realize that.
Every consideration has been shown, and I am bound to say, speaking
from first-hand knowledge, that our local bench has behaved in a most
humane and enlightened manner.”

“Brandon will not agree with you there, I fancy.”

“Would he have had us send the man to jail?” Mr. Perry-Hennington’s
temperature was still going up steadily.

“He says John Smith has been condemned without a trial.” For a reason
Joliffe could not explain he was beginning to dislike the vicar
intensely. “And he says that if the evidence is to be believed even
Jesus had a trial.”

“Monstrous!” said the vicar. “A perfectly monstrous parallel!”




XXVII


THE interview with Dr. Joliffe ruffled the vicar. The repetition of
Brandon’s words was ill-timed, nor was it easy to forgive Brandon
for uttering them. Action had been taken in the public interest and
Mr. Perry-Hennington could not endure a breath of criticism. One way
and another it had cost him a good deal. It was only the inspiration
of a high and pure motive and the fact that he had no personal ax to
grind which had enabled him to carry out the most difficult, the most
delicate, and quite the most thankless task in which he had ever been
involved.

In the vicar’s opinion he had reason to be satisfied with the finesse
he had used; moreover, he had not the slightest doubt that the body
politic, of which Brandon and Joliffe were members, had been laid under
a deep obligation. Certainly he had no need to reproach himself in the
matter. Without exciting remark of any kind, a very undesirable person,
capable of doing infinite mischief, had been placed out of harm’s way.
Officious villagers had been referred to the police; and the vicar
hoped to soften any stab his conscience might sustain in regard to the
widow by defraying the expenses of her funeral out of his own pocket.

In the meantime Brandon had a severe relapse. Any hope of mental
serenity had for a time been destroyed. The cause of his friend weighed
upon him so heavily that at first it seemed he might not recover from
the blow. He mourned him constantly and presently arose the fear that
he was about to die.

In this perilous phase only one thing stood between the sufferer and
the death which in many ways would have been welcome. The will to
live was not evoked in him by wife or children or a sense of duty to
society; in the last resort it was simply that he felt a sacred task
had been laid upon him. His poor friend had been put out of life by the
kind of stupidity against which the world has always been defenseless,
and from which history is the only court of appeal. But the sense of
a great wrong, which henceforward it must be his life’s business to
redress, somehow gave Brandon the motive power to continue an existence
which had become almost unendurable.

He must find the means to vindicate his friend. Lying _in extremis_,
with the life of the senses slipping out of his grasp, the idea
produced a miraculous rebirth. It contained a germ of the central
energy, faint and discreet, yet with the power to imbue a shattered
existence with the will to be.

As soon as the new purpose took shape in his mind, he grew visibly
stronger, in outward mental life at least. By now he had small hope or
none that he would ever recover the use of his legs, but the sense of
utter, futile weariness which had fastened upon him began to pass. And
the new power came from a source deep down in the soul, of which for
the first time he gained apperception.

For several weeks after the mischief had been wrought, Brandon declined
to see the vicar. He did not impugn his sincerity. Too well he knew
the nature of the man to believe that he had acted from a trivial or
unworthy motive. But it seemed impossible for one of Brandon’s liberal
mind to forgive crass wrongheadedness raised to the nth power.

Now that the will to live had been evoked, Brandon clung with pathetic
tenacity to any frail straw of hope of physical recovery. He felt
within himself how slight they were, but as the weeks of slow torment
passed he never quite gave up. All the resources of modern science
were at his service and they were used to the full. No known means was
neglected of restoring the vital current to the outraged organism.
Massage and radiant heat were applied, electricity was shot through
his skin, he submitted to the newest serums, the latest treatments, but
the unhappy weeks went by and the sufferer remained dead from the waist
down.

Indeed, the sole effect was that at last he was tempted to ask himself
whether he had been wise in the first instance to drive the will to
its almost superhuman effort to retain physical life. Time and again
in these weeks of darkness that doubt recurred to him. The act of
despotism of which he had been the witness, against which he had
struggled with all the power he still possessed, weighed upon him
increasingly. Somehow the whole miserable affair seemed to involve all
the sources of his faith.

What was that faith? He had gone to the wars of his country in the
spirit of a modern Crusader, of one not expecting too much from the
world or his fellow men, of one who was inclined to regard almost
the whole of the Bible as a legend, but yet a staunch believer in
the essential decency of his own nation, his own people, and imbued
with the idea that somewhere in the universe there was a God of
Righteousness who was striving to create Himself.

But now a wound had been dealt him in the house of his friends.




XXVIII


FOR several months Brandon heard nothing of John Smith. Not able to
write himself, he had not the courage to dictate a letter. In such
circumstances there was nothing to be said which did not seem an
impertinence, yet many times he was possessed by an intense desire
to communicate. Day by day the man himself remained at the root of
Brandon’s thoughts.

In their last interview John had said that he had a great work to do.
Although his fate had even then been foreshadowed, he had made that
declaration; moreover, he had expressed a serene confidence that grace
would be given for his task.

From the first Brandon had had a great curiosity as to what that
task could be. Believing implicitly in the full mental and moral
responsibility of his friend, he would not permit a doubt of his
capacity. And yet it was only too likely that the conditions in which
his life was now passed would paralyze a wonderful mind. Brandon
had done all that lay in his power to lighten its lot; he had not
spared money to provide reasonable comfort, reasonable amenity of
surroundings; books and papers had gone to Wellwood from time to time;
all that could be done by a friend’s devotion had been done to sustain
John Smith and keep his soul alive.

At last the silence was broken. Brandon received a letter from
Wellwood, expressing deep gratitude for this solicitude. But it also
expressed far more. It disclosed a penetration of thought, a power of
vision, above all a real nobility of temper whose only parallel in the
mind of Brandon was that of Socrates in similar but less degrading
circumstances.

Somehow Brandon was comforted. The transcendent qualities he had long
perceived in this man were here in their fullness. Amid the Stygian
glooms of a world ever groping in darkness, a great light shone. In
Brandon’s opinion it was better to be immured with John Smith in
Wellwood Sanatorium than to enjoy the sanctions of human freedom.

In the course of a full letter, which Brandon read again and again,
John Smith referred to a work upon which he was engaged. He was going
forward with his task, and with the help of others it was nearing
fulfillment. He did not disclose what the task was, nor did he refer to
“the others” specifically.

Weeks passed. Visibly helped by John Smith’s letter, Brandon, to the
joy of his friends, regained much of his mental poise. The dark clouds
of a few months back were slowly dispersed, but in body he remained
inert, and now without hope of cure. And then one morning at the
beginning of December there came a second letter from Wellwood.

It merely contained these words: “Come soon. I need you.”

Such authoritative brevity was for Brandon a command which he felt he
must obey. But he was at once aware that he could only get to Wellwood
in the teeth of a junta. Wife, doctor, nurse, all had very strong
reasons to urge against a journey of nearly twenty miles in the middle
of winter to such a place on such a pretext. To them the summons itself
was the caprice of an unsound mind, the wish to obey it the whim of a
sick man.

But in this, as they were to learn, they underrated the forces now at
work. Fully set on obeying the summons, Brandon would brook no refusal.
In vain Millicent dissuaded, in vain Joliffe and the nurse issued a
ukase. Come what might he must see John Smith; if the heavens fell he
must go to Wellwood.

Opposition raised Brandon’s will to such a pitch that at last his
guardians had to consider the question very seriously. And they
reluctantly saw that beyond the amount of trouble involved there was
no real reason why he should not have his way. Prejudice, it was true,
also entered into the matter; doctor and nurse agreed that it could
not be good for a sick man to visit such a place as Wellwood. But the
sick man declared he alone must be judge of that; and as a growing
excitement threatened a return of fever, consent was reluctantly given
for a letter to be written to the chief medical officer at Wellwood for
permission to see John Smith.

Millicent Brandon wrote the letter at the invalid’s dictation, devoutly
hoping the while that its purpose would fail. Alas for the frailty of
human hopes in the scale of official perversity! By return of post came
full permission to visit the patient at any time. In the presence of
this bombshell nothing was left but to submit with a good grace to the
inevitable.

Accordingly, in the gray of a December afternoon, Brandon made the
journey to Wellwood by motor. It hardly took an hour. Little of the
landscape was visible in the winter half-light, and the place itself
was unable to reveal the beauties of its setting. Run on modern lines
with accommodation for a hundred patients, it had the comforts of a
home to offer and a very great deal in the way of human kindness. To
one in John Smith’s rank of life it was a place of luxury; to those
whose lot had been cast on more liberal lines there was little to
complain of in regard to food, housing, reasonable recreation. Yet to
each and all of its inmates, from the most open and amenable to the
most sullen and defiant, it had one truly dreadful drawback. They were
not there of their own free will, but were held by the order of the
State.

That simple but terrible fact galled one and all like a chain. And few
cherished any real hope of ever getting free. “Abandon hope all ye
who enter here,” might have been engraved above the pleasant portals
of this polite prison. Once behind those doors, the young and the old
alike felt themselves caught in the meshes of a deep-laid conspiracy,
of a darkness and a subtlety beyond belief. Every attempt at freedom
was a struggle against fate, every effort to break the fetters of the
law riveted them more securely. From time to time the patients were
visited by doctors, magistrates, clergymen, commissioners in lunacy,
but these came as a concession to the wisdom and humanity of an
abstract conception. Insight, hope, healing, came not in their train.

Brandon felt a sudden chill of soul as he was lifted by his chauffeur
and his valet from the car and carried into the light and the
suffocating warmth beyond those ornate, nail-studded doors. The place
was overheated, yet to Brandon it had an effect of sudden immersion in
icy water. There was something in its atmosphere which struck right
down to the roots of his being. It was so subtle yet so deadly that a
nausea came upon him. And yet, as he was soon to realize, this emotion
had its source in his own weakness, in his own state of extreme mental
tension.

Brandon was carried into a private room and was there received by the
chief medical officer, Dr. Thorp, to whom he was known by hearsay.
And it was his privilege to have a conversation with a humane and
enlightened man, which interested him profoundly.

Dr. Thorp stood very high in his profession, and his many years’
experience of mental cases was wide and deep. For him the subject with
which he dealt, terrible as it was, had an all-absorbing interest.
It offered to the researches of science a boundless field; moreover,
this expert had a power over himself, and was therefore able to keep a
sane, cool, balanced judgment in the midst of perils which too often
overthrew his fellow workers. In a word, he could detach the part from
the whole and so prevent the mind from being subdued to that in which
it worked.

In Dr. Thorp’s cozy room, under the bust of Æsculapius, Brandon had
a talk in which he learned many things. The chief medical officer
spoke with a frankness, a fair-minded desire to be impartial, which
Brandon somehow had not looked for. To begin with he did not hesitate
to describe the case of John Smith as quite the most remarkable that
had ever come into his ken. And the fact that Brandon had known him
intimately for many years, that he had always been his friend and
champion, and that grievously stricken as he was, he had come to see
him now, appeared in the eyes of Dr. Thorp to give this visitor an
importance altogether unusual.

“I welcome you here, Mr. Brandon, for several reasons,” he said. “Apart
from the fact that you pay John’s bills every quarter, and that he
always speaks of you in the most affectionate terms, I am hoping that
you will be able to add to our knowledge of the dear fellow himself.”

Somehow Brandon was a little startled by the epithet. It had an odd
sound on official lips. He would have expected it to fall almost as
soon from the governor of a jail. The doctor met Brandon’s look of
surprise with a smile. “It’s the only way to describe him,” he said.
“But he is a great puzzle to us all. And if in any way you can help us
to solve him we shall be much in your debt.”

“There is little I can tell you,” said Brandon, “that you don’t
already know. And that little I’ll preface with a simple statement
which I hope will not annoy you too much. It’s my unshakable belief
that John Smith ought not to be here.”

A perceptible shadow crossed the alert face of Dr. Thorp. “It is my
province to disagree with you,” he said very gravely. “Not for a moment
could I allow myself to hold anyone here against his will if I thought
him entirely sane, normal, rational.”

“I readily understand that,” said Brandon with his air of charming
courtesy. “But may I ask what means are open to you in an institution
of this kind of forming an impartial judgment?”

Dr. Thorp answered the question with a frankness which greatly
prepossessed Brandon in his favor. “I readily admit that for us here an
impartial judgment is hardly possible. John Smith has been certified
insane in the particular way that the law requires, and we are only
able to approach his case in the light of that knowledge.”

“Yes, that I quite understand. But may I ask this question? Had John
Smith not been certified as a lunatic when he came here, had he, let us
assume, come here on probation, could you conscientiously certify him
by the light of your present knowledge?”

“You have asked a most difficult question, but I will answer it as
well as I can. As a private individual, although he shows certain
symptoms which sooner or later are bound, in my judgment, to lead to
serious mental derangement, he is not likely at present to do actual
harm; in fact he is capable of doing positive good; but of course, in a
time like this he has to be considered as a political entity, and it is
on these grounds I understand that he is here to be taken care of until
the war is over.”

“_Prima facie_, that is true,” said Brandon. “In other words, a man of
pure and noble genius is the victim of a shallow, sectarian ignorance
which deserves to be the laughing-stock of the universe.”

The words were extravagant, and a certain violence of gesture
accompanied them, but the reaction of Dr. Thorp was serious, even
troubled. “You are bent on involving me in the most difficult problem
of my experience,” he said, after a pause.

“I am. And perhaps--who knows?--in the most difficult problem the
civilized world has yet had to face.”

“As you say, who knows?” said Dr. Thorp, a cloud growing on his
sensitive face.

“In other words,” said Brandon, “you are ready to admit that a man of
very profound and beautiful genius is being held here.”

“Those are big words,” was the reply of professional caution. “And
genius is of many kinds. But speaking of John Smith as I have found
him, I will make an admission which you are entitled to use as you
think fit. We all bless the day he came here.”

A look of startled pleasure came into Brandon’s face. “One somehow
expected to hear that,” he said.

“Whatever his mentality may be, and of its range I am not competent to
judge, the man has what I can only call a largeness of soul which has
an effect upon others. One of our old men, one of our deranged fine
intellects, of whom we have several, and very pathetic they are, has
christened him the Light-Bringer, and somehow we feel it is a title
that he thoroughly deserves.”

“That is to say, he is a good influence among your patients?”

“Yes; in fact a moral force. The staff tell me that since he came here
their work is less by one-half. As an instance of what I mean, let me
give you a little anecdote which our head attendant told me only this
morning. We have an old German professor, who has been here some time.
He is apt to be very cantankerous and now and again gives a great deal
of trouble. On his bad days no one can do anything with him. But it
seems that John is now an established exception to the rule and that
he can simply make him do anything. This morning it appears the Herr
Professor had decided that he would no longer wear a tie. ‘Put it on at
once,’ said Boswell, our head attendant. ‘I shall not,’ said the Herr
Professor, ‘except by the command of God and the Emperor.’ ‘Very well,’
said the head attendant, ‘then I shall ask the Master to come to you.’
Well, the Master came--that, by the way, is the name the patients have
given him. The head attendant stated his case and the Master said to
the Herr Professor, ‘Put on your tie, my dear friend. It is the rule
here in Elysium and you are bound to obey it. Otherwise the gods will
turn you out and you may find yourself wandering in outer darkness for
another hundred years or so.’”

“And did the Herr Professor put on his tie?” asked Brandon.

“He put it on at once,” said Dr. Thorp with a laugh. “Of course it’s a
very trivial anecdote. But to me the whole thing is a remarkable piece
of make-believe.”

“I’m afraid I don’t quite understand.”

“Well, you see, our friend John has persuaded the old fellow that he is
Goethe, talks to him in German and treats him with a deference which
raises a smile. And the odd side of the affair is that the poor old
chap now firmly believes himself to be Goethe and does his best to act
up to his part.”

“I see,” said Brandon.

“And John Smith has taught us already that in the administration of
a place of this kind, there is practically no limit to the power of
suggestion. We have a hundred patients here, and his power over them is
astonishing. There seems to be nothing he can’t make some of them do;
and as he is a great upholder of law and order we bless the day he came
among us.”

“As I understand your theory, this moral ascendancy has been gained
over your patients by the power of suggestion?”

“Yes; to put it crudely the effect he has upon them is a kind of
hypnotism of the imagination. For instance, a truly remarkable case is
that of a man who might once have done great things in music. Another
German by the way. But for years he has been mentally deranged. Yet
in his case John Smith seems to have performed a miracle. By his
power of sympathy he has hypnotized the man into composing some quite
wonderful music. From time to time he plays it to us. The other day I
got a friend of mine who really understands the subject to come and
hear it. He says it had such a quality that he can only compare it to
Beethoven.”

“Indeed!” said Brandon.

Dr. Thorp laughed. “And the oddest part of the whole matter is that the
music only came to be written because John Smith was able to persuade
our poor friend that he really was Beethoven.”

“Again the power of suggestion?”

“Undoubtedly. And one that deserves to become a classical instance of
the power of sympathetic imagination rightly applied. I am not sure
that John Smith is not a great thinker who has discovered a profound
truth.”

“I am inclined to believe that he has discovered more than one.” A glow
of excitement had begun to course in Brandon’s veins.

“At any rate,” said the doctor, “I defy anyone to see him here in the
midst of our patients--very obscure and baffling mental cases, some of
them are--without a feeling that he wields a quite remarkable power
over certain types of his fellow creatures.”

“One is immensely interested to know that.”

“It is hardly too much to say that the atmosphere of the whole place
has changed. Six months ago we could hope for nothing better than
the sullen bickerings of Bedlam; today certain of our best cases are
rising to a kind of high intellectuality which, I frankly confess, is
amazing.”

“And this you attribute to the direct influence of John Smith?”

“It is the only way to account for it.”

“Can you put into words the precise form it takes?”

“In a few minutes I hope you will be able to judge for yourself. In the
meantime perhaps you will join me in a cup of tea.” And in deference
to the sudden arrival of a well-filled tray, Dr. Thorp suspended for a
moment further consideration of the subject.




XXIX


TEA was Brandon’s favorite beverage. And this afternoon it seemed to
work a wonder upon him. It caused his veins to thrill and burn with an
exhilaration he had never expected to feel again.

“I learn from our amazing friend,” said Dr. Thorp, pointing a finger at
the tray, “that one of the most powerful deities of the astral world is
in that teapot.”

“He seems,” said Brandon, “to have taken all imagination for his
province.”

“He lives upon the theory, nothing is but thinking makes it so. He says
if one can only grasp it truly, it covers all the phenomena in the
universe.”

“In other words,” said Brandon with a smile, “you are not ashamed to
sit at the feet of the prophet who has come into your midst.”

“I confess it. I confess it frankly and fully.” And the doctor laughed.

Brandon felt a thrill of delight. He was like a chemist who learns from
a flame in his test tube that he has not deceived himself, and that his
great discovery has received the sanction of science.

“Yes, his theories are wonderful,” said the doctor, perhaps in answer
to the eager look on Brandon’s face. “Moreover, he has an extraordinary
faculty of putting them into practice. Many little changes in the life
here are due to him. They all make for greater harmony. Somehow, he
oils the wheels of our intercourse. And there is one innovation you
shall see for yourself if you care to do so.”

“There is nothing I should like so much.”

“It is one of his devices for keeping our best people amused and
interested. He says ideas are the life of the soul, and that creative
imagination is its highest function. And he has formed a sort of
debating society, which meets every afternoon to discuss the problems
of the present and the future.”

“Are your patients able to discuss them reasonably?”

“Not merely reasonably, I venture to say profoundly. We have some
intellectuals here, men who have read and thought perhaps too much,
whose brains have given out before their time. And then in all
institutions of this kind there are queer, freakish intellects, capable
of an intermittent brilliancy although unfit for the routine of
practical life, while some of the old men whom we take care of in their
declining years have been men of attainment in the heyday of their
powers. I tell you all this, because what you are about to see will
most probably astonish you. John Smith wields a marvelous regenerative
influence in this institution, and I want you to see it at work.”

“I shall be delighted to do so.”

“Very well. But let us first find out whether the portents are
favorable.” Thereupon with a smile Dr. Thorp rose and pressed the
button of an electric bell three times.

Presently the summons was answered by no less a person than the head
attendant, a tall, deliberate, very dour looking Scotsman.

“Boswell,” said Dr. Thorp, as it seemed to Brandon, with a twinkle in
his eye, “is the Court sitting this afternoon?”

“Yes, sir,” said the head attendant with perfect gravity. “The Master
took the chair at three o’clock.”

“What are they discussing?”

“Germany, sir.” The head attendant spoke with a slow solemnity which
nearly provoked Brandon to a laugh. “_Toujours l’Allemagne_,” said the
doctor. “Still the only question for the Court.”

“And likely to be for some little time yet, sir,” said Boswell
impressively. “What they are now trying to arrive at is, can Germany be
readmitted on any terms to the comity of nations?”

“But they were dealing with that question a month ago.”

“Well, sir, they are at it still. And I’m afraid they don’t get much
forwarder.”

“Any good speeches this afternoon?”

“Two of the best we’ve had yet, sir. They seem to get better and
better.”

At the note of enthusiasm in the voice of the head attendant, Dr. Thorp
directed a glance, half pride, half amusement at his visitor.

“We had Abraham on his legs again, sir. He gave us a regular rasper.”

“For your information,” said the doctor to Brandon dryly, “Abraham is
none other than Abraham Lincoln.”

“He didn’t half let Germany have it, sir.” The tone of the head
attendant was curiously grim.

“How did Goethe take it?” asked the doctor with a chuckle.

“Like a lamb, sir. He just sat in the corner crying like a child.”

Dr. Thorp rose and took a pipe from the chimneypiece.

“The proceedings opened this afternoon, sir,” Boswell continued, “with
a speech from Tolstoi. And very nice, too, sir; perhaps a little sloppy
in places, but very good in its way. I should like you to have heard
it, sir.”

“I should like to have done so.” The doctor’s tone was half pride, half
amused indulgence.

“Universal brotherhood was his ticket, sir. Rights of man.
Nonresistance to evil and so on. Of course it doesn’t quite work out,
but it was a very creditable effort, very creditable indeed--especially
for an old man who can’t button his own collar.”

“Quite so,” said the doctor.

“And I think you’ll like to know, sir”--a note of pride entered the
head attendant’s voice--“that we also had a speech from the brother who
came here the other day from Broad Hill. It was his first attempt, and
to my mind one of the best yet.”

“That’s interesting,” said the doctor, smiling at Brandon. “What’s his
name, by the way?”

“The Master introduced him as Spinoza.”

“I hope he was well received.”

“He was, sir, and yet not altogether as you might say. Both Plato and
Aristotle seemed inclined to criticize him, and they were dead set
against his proposal that Germany should be more fully represented.
Spinoza seemed to think that she was entitled to more friends than
Goethe and himself and Beethoven.”

“I wonder, I wonder,” Brandon interposed in a soft, far-away voice.

“Spinoza thought that Luther, Kant and Leibnitz ought also to be
allowed to speak for her.”

“But those names are not on the register.”

“Several of the brethren pointed that out, sir, but the Master said if
the Court decided that Germany was entitled to call them, there would
be no difficulty in causing them to appear.”

“Then I hope the Court decided in Spinoza’s favor,” said Dr. Thorp. “It
will be interesting to see how the Master contrives to make good his
promise.”

“When I left them, sir, they were arguing the question. But it will not
surprise me if they decide against the proposal.”

“What reason have you for thinking so?” asked Brandon.

“It’s Plato’s opinion, sir,” said Boswell, very impressively, “that
Germany, having betrayed her religion, and having perverted her
science, neither Luther nor Leibnitz has any _locus standi_, and as far
as Kant is concerned he agrees with Aristotle that the Court has too
many philosophers already.”

“And he carries great weight, I presume?” said Brandon.

“If Plato’s against the proposal, sir,” said the head attendant still
very impressively, “they’ll rule it out, unless the Master himself
intervenes.”

“Yes, and rightly,” said Dr. Thorp. “Before his mental breakdown,
some years ago, he was a man of great parts, a professor of Greek at
Cambridge, a beautiful speaker. Now that John Smith has taken him
in hand we are delighted to think that his fine powers are being
reawakened. When he is in his best form it is well worth anyone’s while
to hear him. What is he like this afternoon, Boswell?”

“I’ve never heard him to better advantage, sir,” said the head
attendant, with a slow and proud solemnity. “He’s quite a treat,
especially to a man like myself, who all my life have made a hobby of
philosophy.”

“Then let us go and hear what he has to say.”




XXX


BRANDON was carried in his chair along a dimly lighted corridor. At
the end of it was a large room, lit more dimly still, in which, as it
seemed, a number of ghostly figures were seated round the fireplace.
For the most part they were old, bearded men, and they were smoking
their pipes and listening with grave attention to one of their number,
who was addressing them in a low, soft, persuasive voice.

Brandon was borne in very quietly by the doctor and the head attendant.
He was placed at the back of the room, at the farthest point from
the group around the fire. His entrance, even if observed, excited
no attention. Without a moment’s interruption, the charming voice,
whose every word was clear and distinct, continued as if nothing was
happening.

To Brandon the whole thing was like a dream. The ghostly half-light
in which the speaker and his audience was wrapped, the flicker of the
distant fire, the curious stillness which the soft voice seemed to
enhance, all added their touch of eeriness to the scene. Suddenly
Brandon was stung to an imaginative intensity he had never felt before.
The image of the spectrum altered, and he was completely possessed by a
weird feeling that he had made the descent into Hades.

In a kind of entrancement he listened to the voice. It seemed a little
older than the world, and yet he had heard it many times, as it seemed
in many ages, for every word it used was somehow enchantingly familiar.
Even the fall of the sentences, the rhythm of the phrases was like
music in his ears. Whose voice could it be? It was a dream voice that
swept his soul back through unnumbered ages, and yet now with full
authority upon his senses in the terrestrial phase of being. He knew he
was in the presence of a great mystery, and yet hearing that voice he
was filled with strange joy.

“Plato,” whispered the doctor at his side.

Somehow the entranced listener felt that such a voice, touched by a
divine grace, could have belonged to no one else.

“My friends”--as the words floated upon Brandon’s ear, they seemed to
submerge his senses--“what is the race of men to do? The goal was in
sight. Its sons were about to enter the kingdom their prayers and their
fidelity to the gods had won for them, when one among them betrayed
his brethren without pity and without shame. The tragedy has happened
more than once in the history of an ill-starred planet, but as you have
lately learned from the lips of Herodotus the circumstances of this
case exceed all others in their poignancy.

“Those who have kept the faith, who have not profaned the high and
awful mysteries to which in youth they were inducted, are permitted
by the gods to assemble in the Court of First and Last Instance, to
consider a most terrible Apostasy. They are to judge by the light
of all the circumstances, they are to make their recommendations in
accordance therewith.

“The Court is agreed that it is in the presence of the worst crime in
its archives. A deed has been done that words cannot paint, a horror
wrought which Justice cannot condone. Yet here among the wise and the
good, as you have heard, are those who invoke in the name of the gods,
the divine clemency for the doers of this evil.

“Some who speak for the Apostate have pleaded that the onus is not
upon the common people of an outlaw state, but upon its ruler and
guardians. This Court is asked to make a distinction between those
whose innocence was wrought upon by cunning, who were goaded by fear
to those bestial acts, which will cause the very name they bear to
stink for generations in the nostrils of men, and the savage lust, the
ignoble greed of those who held the reins of power. It is said that
what they did they could not help doing. In the name of the Highest,
appeal is made to the universal brotherhood existing among men, which
they betrayed without pity and without remorse.

“Let me remind you, that pray for a miserable and perverted people, of
the words of Socrates. He has said that the citizens of a state must in
all circumstances accept full responsibility for its rulers. Whatever
the form of its government, it is neither better nor worse than it
deserves. And he has said that as the commonalty yearned to fatten on
the spoils of victory, it is the divine justice that it drink the cup
of defeat to the last drop of its bitterness.

“My friends, emboldened by the words of an inspired teacher, I ask you
to take care lest mercy become weakness, and weakness supine folly.
This is a conflict of philosophies, but even if the gods are many,
Justice and Truth are one.

“It follows, therefore, that there can be no compromise between the
evil and the good. Violence and insult have been offered to mankind, to
the divine justice, and therefore to that Heaven in which we hope to
dwell. With those who have kept the faith, I ask that a pitiless crime
be punished without pity.

“According to the old law, those who offend the gods suffer banishment.
The very name they bear is forever accursed, they are shunned by the
virtuous, they suffer eternal ostracism and the death of the soul. In
the name of all that is sacred, I ask that the law now take its course.
Let those who drew the sword perish by the Sword. Let them and their
kindred, their children, and their children’s children be cast out
forever. Such is the demand of justice. By no decree less awful can it
be met.”

There came silence. The voice, to whose every word Brandon had listened
in a kind of entrancement, could be heard no longer. He strained his
eyes and his ears, but through the haze of shadows he was unable to
distinguish the speaker among those seated round the fire. The hush
that followed excited him strangely. And then another voice was heard,
a voice remote yet familiar, which seemed to cause his heart to break
inside him.

“Brethren”--the new voice was curiously soft and gentle, yet its every
word was like a sword--“I am the eye of the west wind. I am the voice
of the evening star. I am one with Brahm. I am the soul of Islam. I am
the destined Buddha. I am the Light of the World, and I say to you
there is no crime that cannot be purged by the Father’s love.

“I stand here at the apex of this world’s history, and I say to you the
old way is not enough. If the spirit of Man is not to bleed in vain,
if the sorrowing earth is to yield the fruits for which her sons have
died, the God of Righteousness must be avenged by the God of Love.

“The Father’s kingdom is the hearts of men. And I say to you, unless
the Son of Man came in vain among you, my word shall not be as Dead Sea
fruit. I speak not to a party or a sect, but to all who would keep the
faith, of whatever countenance or caste.

“In this slender folio which I hold in my hand is contained the divine
genius of the ancient and the modern world, the gold of its dreams, the
bread of its aspiration. The souls of the just through whom the Father
spoke of old time have been summoned anew; the prophets, the magicians,
the makers of harmony, have been gathered together, so that the terms
of the Truce may take visible shape in the sight of all nations.

“I say to you, let none oppose it. This Mandate speaks to the bosoms
and the business of men. Through it man shall cast off his chains.
Through it he shall hear the voice of his Father, which is in Heaven.
The Kingdom shall be made manifest; and all wars shall cease; and this
old unhappy earth shall see the light of the promised day.

“There are strong spirits who do not approve this Mandate. They have
their place in the hierarchy; they are of the chosen friends of
mankind; sacred Hellas and imperial Rome are with them; they have the
sanction of the elder gods, but I say to them, judge not that you be
not judged. The Apostate has sinned against the Light, but millions of
her children have been purified by sacrifice. Man may live a slave, and
in a vile cause may die a king. The enemy of the human race has bred
great souls. And in the last account let these stand the surety of her
that bred them. Therefore I say to you again, judge not that you be not
judged.”

There was a pause of curious intensity. When the familiar voice ceased
for a moment, Brandon, as if in a dream, peered through the stifling
silence to the figures round the fire. One there was standing in their
midst, whom he could not yet see, but of whose magical presence his
every fiber was aware. Suddenly he caught a gesture of the uplifted
head and the voice flowed on.

“Empires and kings shall pass away, but My Word shall not pass away.
And I say to those who pray for the Apostate, let her cast out the
devil in her entrails and return to the old way. Let her seek again
the voice of the Father in the trees and the grass, the rivers and the
mountains, let her weave again her enchanted harmonies in homage of the
Love He bears her. Then shall her fields again grow fruitful, the sweet
past shall renew itself with increase, her grateful brothers in science
shall again take her hand.

“I see around me the souls of the saints waiting to be reborn. Through
unnumbered ages they have held on high the lamp of Truth. Let them
return to a sweeter world, a world enkindled and renewed in the
Father’s Love.

“Here, in the presence of all that is, and all that was, I affirm the
Beautiful, and the Good.

“I affirm Justice, Truth, _and_ Mercy.

“I affirm the universal brotherhood of men.

“I say to you, fear God, honor the King; which being interpreted means,
obey the Law.

“See the Father in all things.

“I say to you finally, man is the question, God is the answer.

“This is the law and the prophets. If you would see the Kingdom deny it
not.”

Again the voice ceased, and Brandon heard the doctor’s whisper: “The
Master is at his best this afternoon. It is better not to interrupt
him if you don’t mind. He will come to you presently. He knows you are
here.”

Brandon shook violently. Possessed by an excitement now almost
terrible, he was unable to speak.




XXXI


“HE is coming now,” the doctor whispered. “I will leave you for a
little while so that you may talk without interruption.” And the doctor
passed out noiselessly.

Silence had fallen again at the other end of the long room. Brandon was
sensible of a faint stir among the dim figures round the fire. And then
his heart leaped to his throat, his veins seemed to run with flame as
there emerged and came slowly toward him an outline wholly different
from that of the man he expected to see. John Smith--if John Smith it
was!--had let his hair grow long, he had acquired a beard, and he wore
a loose robe tied round his middle by a cord.

The wide-pupiled eyes and the strange pallor of the face struck with
vivid intensity through the ghostly half-light of the room.

The shock of this appearance was like a knife in Brandon’s flesh.

“Dear friend”--even the voice had changed--“you have heard great
argument. And here is the matter of it.” A manuscript bound in brown
paper was placed in Brandon’s hands. “I charge you in the name of
humanity to give this to the world with the Father’s love.”

A shiver of strange joy passed through the frame of the stricken man.
The simple words pierced to a hidden spring. Forces long pent were
released within him, new light, new power, seemed to suffuse him.
Enfolded by his presence, he was conscious of a kind of rapture which
was like a rebirth. He felt the caress of lips on his forehead, the
great eyes sank into him. And then came the voice, familiar and yet
strange, “Faithful servant, if you believe in me rise from your bed and
walk.”

The words were as a fire. In the same tone of gentleness they were
repeated, and Brandon felt the icy touch of a hand upon his cheek. His
heart seemed to break and thrill with joy, as, overborne by an anguish
of feeling, he suddenly rose from his chair and cast himself at the
feet of him in whose presence he was.

“Master!” he cried. “Master!”




XXXII


IN the course of a few minutes two attendants entered for the purpose
of conveying the visitor to the doctor’s room. Brandon returned to
his chair, his friend bade him good-by, and then the sufferer allowed
himself to be carried down the corridor as if nothing had happened.

His brain was in a state of wild ferment, yet he was sufficiently its
master to refrain from letting Dr. Thorp know that the power of motion
had returned to his limbs. At the instance of faith he had risen from
his bed and walked, but now was not the time to proclaim a miracle in
the sight of men.

“I hope you had an interesting talk with our friend,” said the doctor,
with a smile of professional politeness. “And what is that I see? Is
that the great work? How high you must stand in his favor!” The voice
of the doctor rose to a sympathetic laugh. “You should be a proud man.
Quite extraordinary pains have been bestowed upon it by him and his
friends here.”

“Have you read it?” asked Brandon, the blood drumming in his ears.

“Oh, yes.”

Brandon, startled by the sound of his own voice, had just enough
courage to ask the doctor’s opinion of the play.

Dr. Thorp replied with a happy frankness: “Don’t laugh at me if I
confess that to my mind it’s a sublime work.”

“You really think so?”

“I do, and I’ll tell you why. There’s such a great idea at the back of
it, that I feel a better, a stronger, a saner man for having come in
contact with it. That play takes one into another world. It draws aside
the curtain, and gives us harassed mortals a peep into the kingdom
of the Something Else. Nothing is but thinking makes it so. Believe
me, that’s a sublime conception. And the Master has made us all feel
here that we have a share in it. Shakespeare, Molière, Sophocles,
Menander, and other august old gentlemen you saw round the fire in the
other room, have all been consulted, and Beethoven has composed some
enchanting music for it, so we can’t help thinking it wonderful.” The
doctor’s laugh was now a note of pure joy. “Believe me, in its way, the
whole thing is incomparable.”

“What is the title?”

“It is called, ‘A Play Without a Name,’ but I am convinced that it
ought to be called, ‘The Something Else,’ or ‘The Power of Love.’ And
although you’ll begin to doubt my sanity, I can’t help feeling that if
the play were performed in every town in Europe at the present hour, it
would be the beginning of a new era for the human race.”

“That is to say, the whole world might be born again through the power
of the spoken word.”

“Exactly,” said the doctor, with enthusiasm. “And that, by the way,
is what the author aims at. Of course you realize what his particular
form of delusion is, and you will have noticed that he begins to bear a
remarkable resemblance to his prototype.”

“Yes,” said Brandon, in a hushed, broken tone, “it’s quite uncanny.”




XXXIII


BRANDON returned to Hart’s Ghyll ostensibly as he had left it. Without
telling his wife what had happened, he allowed himself to be carried
to his room and put to bed. For one thing he was worn out with the
strange excitement of the afternoon. The visit to Wellwood had made so
great a call on a devitalized nervous system, that he now felt rather
feverish and overstrung. But as he sank on his pillows in a reaction of
weariness, nature insisted that for a time he should forget.

As he lay trying to reconstruct the amazing experience he had just been
through, a vague, delicious sense of mystery flowed through him. But
it was for a moment only. He had hardly time to ask himself whether
the new life was still in his limbs when sleep stole upon him, and the
chain of his thought was broken.

How long his sleep lasted he didn’t know. But it was heavy, dreamless
and profound, and he awoke in the pitch darkness of a December night.
Almost his first sensation was that something had happened, something
which had forever changed the current of his life. What could it be?
Before the question was answered, before he could relate himself to the
life of the senses, and the mind could gain perception of itself, he
grew conscious of a thought half formed. It was full of strange joy, of
strange fear. Then he tried to cast his mind back, and in the very act
of doing so, he suddenly heard a voice in the room: “If you believe in
me rise from your bed and walk.”

Involuntarily he sat up, flung aside the bedclothes, pressed his
lifeless feet upon the carpet. An instant he stood swaying, expecting
to fall, and then he felt himself sustained by a new power. Foot by
foot he groped his way to the window and drew its curtains aside.

The risen moon was shining on the trees of the park. As its cold light
flowed into Brandon’s eyes, he was able to assure himself that he was
fully awake. He was able to assure himself that a miracle had made him
whole, and that his being was rooted now in some subtle but profound
alchemy of the soul. For long he stood looking out on the night, while
a growing joy pervaded him. Tears of pure happiness, whose shedding was
an exquisite physical relief, ran down his cheeks. Again and again his
flesh responded to the thrill of a recollected touch; a rapture he had
never known coursed through his veins; his bonds were broken; he was
borne upon the wings of a new destiny.

Almost delirious with joy he got back into bed, and lay a long hour
shivering with excitement. Even now he hardly dared to meet the hard
logic of the matter. The events of yesterday besieged him like a
fantastic dream. He had risen from his bed, and he had walked at the
command of One in whom he had implicitly believed. But at this moment
he dare not ask himself to restate that faith in its superhuman aspect.

Long before daylight came, his thoughts had grown so insurgent, that
he put out a hand and switched on the light. On a table by his bed was
laid the manuscript he had brought from Wellwood. In an ecstasy of
growing bewilderment he turned to it now, devouring it greedily, almost
with a sense of ravishment.

It was called simply, ‘A Play Without a Name.’ It set forth a “religion
of humanity,” in a series of parables crystal-clear to the humblest
mind, yet by a superhuman cunning, as it seemed to Brandon, fulfilling
the laws which govern the enchanting art of the dramatist. The action
had been devised for representation, the words that they might be
spoken in the theater. The theme was the power of love, human and
divine, and it was illustrated by vivid, moving, beautiful pictures.

Daylight found Brandon still pondering this wonderful play. He was now
in the thrall of an all-absorbing event. A few hours back he had passed
through a miraculous experience, and the problem now was to relate it
to the known facts of organic life. The difficulties of the situation
were foreshadowed as soon as the nurse came into the room.

“Who has drawn back the curtains?” she demanded at once, in a tone of
stern surprise.

Brandon, in spite of his excitement, was able to affect a torpid
indifference to the question.

“I could have taken an oath,” said the nurse, “that when I left you
last night the curtains were pulled across the window as usual!”




XXXIV


ON the afternoon of the following day, Millicent Brandon took the great
news to the vicarage, that Gervase had walked across the room. It was
a thrilling announcement, and Millicent’s excitement was reflected in
Edith and the vicar, for like all his friends they had given up hope
that he would ever walk again.

It appeared that something very like a miracle had happened. And,
strange to say, it coincided with the visit to Wellwood. But doctor and
nurse were loath to believe that that unsanctioned journey had anything
to do with a most astonishing matter. As for Brandon himself, walking
the path of an extreme wariness in the midst of new and overwhelming
perplexities, he was very careful not to claim it as the fount of
healing.

A week passed, a truly wonderful week of returning life, of unsealed
physical power. The sensory apparatus had been repaired, the dead
limbs were again alive, the sufferer had risen from his bed; and in
his own mind it was absolutely clear to what agency the fact was due.
Moreover, it carried with it a very special obligation.

Brandon had never regarded himself as a religious man. Before he
went to the wars of his country he had been a skeptic. He understood
well enough the great part faith had played in human affairs, but
he had conceived it as the fruit of a peculiar mental and physical
constitution. He knew that the religious sense had the power to create
an amazing world of its own, but he had been glad to think that he
could meet the facts of existence without its aid. Now, however, he
felt himself to be a new Faust, who had sold himself, not to the devil,
but to the Christian God. He had been miraculously restored to physical
health, but only on condition that he obeyed without mental reservation
of any kind, the implicit will of Another.

He must lay all questioning aside. Body and soul were now in the care
of a superhuman power. He had entered into a most solemn pact, to whose
fulfillment he must bend the whole force of his will. And its first
fruits were to be seen in a letter which he addressed to an old school
and college friend, one Robert Pomfret, urging him to come and spend
Christmas at Hart’s Ghyll.

Brandon hardly dared to hope that the letter would succeed in its
purpose. There was little in such an invitation to lure a regular man
of the town from his accustomed round. But the unexpected happened.
Pomfret, being “at a loose end” in Christmas week, found his way to
Hart’s Ghyll, prompted, no doubt, by a generous desire to cheer up an
old friend in the hour of affliction.

The two men were curiously unalike. Pomfret was not a creature of
delicate perceptions, or intellectual curiosity. Apart from a large and
rich geniality, which endeared him to a wide circle of acquaintances,
he was merely a shrewd, eupeptic man of business, whose supreme merit
was, that he knew exactly how many beans made five. But a subtle bond
may exist between diverse characters, if each is sound at the core,
and in this case a humorous respect was paid to the other’s peculiar
qualities.

Brandon was delighted, and perhaps just a little flattered by the
arrival of his sagacious friend on Christmas Eve. He had not dared
to hope that a casual note, at such short notice, would lure a pagan
and worldling from his orbit. But a divinity shapes our ends. His old
fagmaster at school was the one man of practical experience to whom
Brandon could turn in the difficult and unknown country he had now to
traverse. Robert Pomfret had really been summoned to Hart’s Ghyll,
not as he innocently and magnanimously believed, on the score of old
friendship, but in his capacity of prosperous lessee of three West End
theaters.

It was not until Christmas Day was far spent that the host disclosed
his fell design. Immediately after dinner he contrived to get the
redoubtable Robert into the library on the plea of “a little advice
on an important matter,” without his victim suspecting the trap that
had been laid for him. Brandon, moreover, led up to the subject with
the discretion of a statesman. And then, in order to get a direct and
reasoned verdict, he read aloud the first act.

His own experience of the stage was confined to one appearance with the
O. U. D. S. in a very humble part. Moreover, his knowledge of general
theatrical conditions was extremely slight. At the same time he knew
that for a tyro to force the portals of the English theater was a
superhuman task. But now, sustained by a very odd sense of the author’s
plenary inspiration, he read with a devout eagerness which puzzled and
rather intimidated Pomfret. However, he was still awake at the end of
the first act.

“What do you think of it?” asked Brandon.

“Go on,” was the curt rejoinder.

Sustained by this Olympian encouragement, Brandon passed to the second
act.

“Go on,” was still the command.

With a puzzled attention, which he somehow yielded in spite of himself,
Pomfret listened to the end of Act Four. And then the flushed, excited,
triumphant reader asked his question again.

“It’s certainly very unusual,” said Mount Olympus cautiously.

Brandon somehow felt as if a bucket of cold water had been dashed
over him. He had allowed himself to expect more sonorous epithets.
Intoxicated by the play’s magic, he suddenly took the bull by the
horns. “I want you to put it up at your best theater in the next six
months,” he said.

“My dear boy,” Pomfret gasped, “do you want to ruin me?”

“What’s the objection?”

“Simply that it isn’t a commercial proposition. Mind, I’m not saying a
word against the play. You’ve got a wonderful head to have thought of
it all, but as I say, it isn’t a commercial proposition.”

“It isn’t my head that’s thought of it, you old dunce,” said Brandon.
“Therefore I invite you to express yourself quite freely and frankly.”

“Well, in the first place,” said the great man, drawing at his cigar,
“the subject itself is not suited to the theater.”

“You think so?”

“I’m sure of it. The whole thing is far too fantastic.”

“Don’t you think the central figure is a wonderful conception?”

“Yes, I do. But who do you suppose is going to play a god who works
miracles, who is the genius of love and laughter, who heals the wounds
of the world by converting it to a religion of universal brotherhood,
universal fellowship, universal joy? Of course, in its way it’s
sublime, but the whole thing is full of peril.”

“It has pitfalls, no doubt. But if only the players will have courage,
I am convinced that the play will carry them.”

“It would be a terrible risk. And then there’s the Censor.”

Brandon confessed that he had forgotten the Censor.

“He’s very shy of religion as a rule,” said Pomfret. “And he’s very
likely to object that it’s far too gentle with the Boche. The creed
of love your enemies is all very well in the Bible, but it’s quite
impossible to practice--at any rate just now. And then the parsons
won’t like their pitch being queered. Their stock in trade has always
been gloom, reproach, damnation, mumbo jumbo, but your deity is a sort
of Pied Piper, who converts a bleeding world to the love of God by the
charm of his music, his power of sympathy, and his care for the doers
of evil. Yes, it’s a remarkable idea, but I’m afraid it’s pro-Boche,
and as far as the religious aspect goes, the people whom it might hope
to interest are the most likely to take offense at it.”

“I can’t think they will,” Brandon protested, “if it’s given in the
spirit in which it’s conceived. Don’t you see that it restates the
central truths of Christianity, and presents them in a clearer, fuller,
more universal light?”

“It may, but that is not likely to appeal to the big public, which goes
to the play to be amused, and not to be edified.”

“Why not let the two states be one and the same? Why not let them march
together?”

“My boy, you don’t know the theater.”

“But the idea behind this play is that the theater is capable of
becoming a great moral and spiritual force. And that’s what it ought
to be. It’s appeal is irresistible; and religion brought from its
superhuman pedestal might be humanized, individualized, made attractive
to all the world. Now, my friend, produce this play at your best
theater, with all the wonderful technical resources at your command,
and you will have a success that will simply astonish you.”

“Or failure that will cause me to file a petition in bankruptcy.”

“I will indemnify you against all loss.”

Pomfret shook a solemn head. “My dear boy,” he said, “it would be
madness to put up a play of this kind.”

“Tell me, what would be the cost of a first-class production?”

“At the Imperial, five thousand pounds, and you would have to be
prepared to lose every penny. It’s not the kind of thing the public
wants, particularly just now.”

“Well, let them have their chance and see what happens.”

They continued to discuss the matter until midnight, and even returned
to it the following day. Brandon marshaled his arguments with such
skill that Pomfret, against his deepest instinct as a theatrical
manager, began to weaken a little. Like all men who succeed in life,
the sense of his own limitations was ever before him. He knew that
there were more things in earth and heaven than were dreamed of in the
philosophy of Robert Pomfret. Brandon was a poet, a scholar, a man of
taste, and even if his qualities had no place in a theater run on
sound commercial lines, after all they stood for something. And when
they had a solid backing of five thousand pounds, they became doubly
impressive.

By the time Pomfret was at the end of his brief stay, he was thinking
furiously. And if he saw no cause to alter the judgment he had formed,
he was too shrewd a man not to fortify it with sound technical advice.
Therefore, the next day, when he left Hart’s Ghyll, the precious
manuscript went with him. He promised to have it copied and submitted
to his reader of plays.




XXXV


A FORTNIGHT passed, which for Brandon was a time of hope, increasing
physical well-being, steadily returning faculty, and then came a letter
from Pomfret. A second reading of the play had deepened his interest;
moreover his reader, on whose judgment he relied, was inclined to think
that it had possibilities. He agreed, however, that the subject was
a thorny one in the present state of public feeling, and before any
proposal was made it would be well, perhaps, to sound the Censor of
plays.

A week later there came a second letter which severely dashed Brandon’s
hopes. The Lord Chamberlain was not prepared to license the play unless
the chief character and two of the principal scenes were removed, in
other words Hamlet must be played without the Prince of Denmark. “But,”
the letter added, “my reader and I are agreed that these ‘cuts’ will
give the production as a whole a far better chance with the large
public. The big scenes are full of danger and religion is not wanted in
the theater. Therefore, if the author is willing for the cuts to be
made, the play may be a practical proposition. The acting, the scenery,
the mounting and the incidental music, which I am told is really
first-rate, will then have less to interfere with them.”

Brandon was rather dismayed. And he was in a trying position. Every
week that passed added to his belief in the plenary inspiration of the
work as a whole. His physical and mental power were growing day by
day and the more firmly he became rooted in the living world of the
present the greater his faith in the miracle which had made him so.
To him, therefore, every word of the play was sacred. But in face of
the official ukase there was only one thing to be done: he constrained
himself to write to Wellwood, giving the history of the negotiations
and inclosing Pomfret’s letter.

He had not long to remain in doubt. In two days there came a reply.
“Dear friend,” it said, “the Masters of Wisdom in council assembled say
to you, let none impair the Truce of God. It is or it is not. The Terms
are the fruit of deep communing. The world must accept or reject them.”

It was the kind of answer Brandon had looked for. Yet while it
simplified his difficulties, it also added to them. On the surface
there was nothing more to be done, and the fact could be accepted with
a clear conscience. But his faith being now as it was, and reënforced
by his daily, his hourly experience, he felt his duty to the world at
large bearing upon him more and more heavily.

Although the matter seemed to have reached its logical end, Brandon,
somewhat to his wife’s dismay, suddenly determined to go up to town.
Even if there was nothing to hope for by still pursuing it, he would
give himself the satisfaction of doing his utmost in the charge laid
upon him.

Millicent did her best to keep him from London. His recovery had been
so recent and so unforeseen that she could not help feeling that he
was still on probation, and that undue stress, either of mind or body,
would involve a serious relapse.

Dr. Joliffe, as puzzled as herself by the new turn of events, seconded
her vigorously. He was sure, from the nature of the case, that his
patient was still on very thin ice. But he was met now by a will of
iron. Even if the heavens fell, Brandon had set his mind on going to
town; yet he would not give a reason. The rueful Millicent had to order
her trunks to be packed; moreover, she had to crave the shelter of the
paternal roof in Hill Street for the peccant invalid until such time
as he had done his business, whatever that business might be.

Prophesying every kind of evil for her stubborn lord, Millicent motored
with him to town on a cold, wet morning of mid-January. Her mood was
one of inspissated gloom, yet as she came to reflect, in the warmth
and comfort of the car, on Gervase’s state in relation to what it had
been hardly more than a month ago, simple gratitude became the dominant
emotion. She must never forget that several of the ablest doctors
in the land had by that time given up his case as hopeless. It had
been finally diagnosed as a nerve lesion whose baffling obscurity had
proved too much even for modern therapeutic skill. A recovery was no
longer hoped for, yet here was the sufferer sitting by her side in full
possession of every physical and mental faculty. A miracle had happened
beyond the ken of science, which it could only account for in the
most general terms. A severe shock had stopped the clock in the first
instance and medical science must now assume that a counter-shock had
set it going again.

Even if Gervase was presuming on the abundant mercy of providence, it
was hard for a devoted wife to be really angry with him just now. For
one thing he was a gay and joyful Gervase. As one who has known the
nadir of the soul, he was now a giant newly risen and refreshed with
strong wine. The universe was rare and strange; the secret hope at the
core of every human life had been verified in a way to surprise the
expectations of the wildest dreamer.

The next morning he went to see Pomfret. As he set out for Half Moon
Street the air was raw, the wind bitter, but he felt like an awakened
sleeper walking in a new and wonderful world. Not again had he hoped
to feel the London pavement under his feet; not again had he hoped
to experience the thrill of the world’s metropolis. Somehow its old,
drab streets put an enchantment upon him. He was fired as he had never
been by their magic and their mystery. And now he had a power within
which set him so miraculously in tune with the infinite that he saw new
colors in the gray sky, the dull grass, the bare trees; he heard noble
harmonies in the flowing air and the sharp wind.

The great man, in a vivid chocolate breakfast suit, was dallying with a
poached egg.

“By all the gods!” he cried, rising with outstretched hands. “What
brings you to town, my son?”

“There is but one God,” said Brandon, allowing himself to be pressed
into the chair nearest the fire. “And John Smith is his prophet. In a
word, he has brought me to town.”

Pomfret laughed, but the shrewd eyes twinkled with a heightened
curiosity. “That is to say, your mysterious genius consents to the
cuts?’

“On the contrary.” And Brandon produced the letter.

While Pomfret read he watched his face narrowly. One thing was clear:
since the great man’s visit to Hart’s Ghyll a good deal of water
had flowed under the bridge. At any rate disappointment, vexation,
perplexity, were now freely displayed in that expressive countenance.

“What a rum letter!” was the first comment. “Is the chap cracked or is
he trying to pull your leg?”

“‘Nothing is but thinking makes it so.’” Brandon’s gravity was almost
stern. “This is no common man, and one day, I hope, a topsy-turvy
planet will know it.”

“I can only say it’s a great pity he won’t consent to the cuts.” The
rejoinder was measured, deliberate, businesslike. “A very great pity.
Morrison’s read it, and he says if it is handled in the right way it
might be a property. As it is of course the public won’t look at it.”

“They won’t be allowed to look at it if the Censor’s ukase means
anything.”

“That can be got over. And as I say, the cuts will be all for the good
of the play.”

“But don’t you see, old dunce, that this is a thing no one can touch?”

“In that case there’s an end of the matter.” Pomfret’s jaw fell three
inches. “The law won’t allow it to be produced in London.”

“Then so much the worse for London.”

“No doubt,” said the cynic at the breakfast table. “But seriously, if
you can persuade your crackpot to be practical we may have a pretty big
thing. Honeybone, the composer, has seen the music. He says it’s great,
and he thinks that theme in the second act might go all over the world.”

“Well, we shall see.”

“But you won’t, my friend, I assure you, unless you can make the man
hear reason.”

“We have his last word, I’m afraid,” said Brandon gravely, as he put
the letter back in his pocket. “And we mustn’t forget that there’s
a great purpose at the back of it all. I believe this work to be
inspired, just as the gospels are inspired--although I own that a month
ago I daren’t have made any such statement.”

Pomfret opened round eyes of wary amazement “Well, well,” he said. And
he rose from the table and offered his visitor a cigarette.




XXXVI


“WELL, well,” said Robert Pomfret. At that moment he was a very puzzled
man.

“So now you know the worst,” said Brandon, looking at him eagerly. “And
that’s why in my humble opinion the thing must stand just as it is.
Moreover, you now know why I conceive it my bounden duty to give it to
the world. And if it can’t be put up here I shall take it to New York.”

The mention of New York had a visible effect upon Pomfret. “Rather a
coincidence,” he said. “Urban Meyer is over here. He’s lunching with me
today at the Ritz. You’d better come and meet him.”

It was a grave confession of ignorance, but Brandon owned that the name
of Urban Meyer conveyed nothing.

“He’s the biggest thing of his kind in existence. He controls four
hundred theaters in the United States, and about the same number in
Europe.”

“A sort of Haroun-al-Raschid,” laughed Brandon.

“I’ve already mentioned the play to him. And he’s reading it now. If
you will come with me to the Ritz you may get further light on the
matter. But if you’re wise you won’t be quite so frank with him as
you’ve been with me. A little bird tells me that he’s interested. But
he’s a regular Napoleon in business. Still you may like to hear what he
has to say, and there’s just a chance that he may save you a journey to
New York.”

“He may,” said Brandon, “but I’m not hopeful. His name bewrayeth him.”

“A hyphenated American,” said Pomfret, “but he began life as a little
Frankfort Jew. A remarkable man with a still more remarkable career
behind him. Exact study of the public taste has made him a millionaire.
Still, we’re old friends and I’m bound to say I’ve always found him a
very decent fellow. And if you care for human documents I think he will
interest you.”

In a fraternal manner they passed the time till one o’clock. About noon
a wintry sun came out and they took a gentle turn in the Green Park to
get an appetite for luncheon. The shrewdly humorous man of affairs was
so full of advice that he was like a kindly uncle. “Whatever you do, my
son, don’t talk to Urban Meyer as you’ve talked to me,” was the burden
of his homily. Even now the practical Pomfret had not quite overcome a
feeling of sheer amazement. A fantastic illusion had declared itself
in a brilliant mind, and no matter how cautiously he approached the
subject he felt the oppression of its shadow. Continuing his sage
advice, he finally led his freakish friend through the revolving doors
of the Ritz on the very stroke of one o’clock.




XXXVII


IN the hall was an odd little man in a brown hat. Appearance
marched with intellect in such a naïve way, that Urban Meyer had an
unmistakable air of being the only one of his kind in existence. And
this was fit and proper. There was only one Urban Meyer in the world,
and nature had been at some pains to emphasize the fact for the benefit
of all whom it might concern.

He was a singularly accessible little man, simple and modest, and not
afflicted with “frills” or shyness. But the queer, birdlike eyes,
while they smiled a gently diffused benevolence, missed no crumb of
what passed around. He was delighted to meet Mr. Brandon--there was a
curious habit of cutting up his words into syllables, the voice was
soft and kind to the verge of the feminine, the handshake prompt and
hearty and almost embarrassingly full of friendship. Altogether he
was such a disarming little man on the surface, that it was hard to
believe that any real depth of guile could be masked by such charm
and innocence. But somehow the infallible Pomfret, in spite of his
encomiums, had contrived to leave no doubt on the matter.

“‘Beware the Jabberwock, my son,’” he whispered as they moved in the
direction of luncheon.

The table was in the left-hand corner, out of the range of the curious,
and as they sat down a feeling almost uncanny came upon Brandon that
this was about to prove the most memorable meal of his life. Outwardly
cool, he was so strangely excited that he had diligently to rehearse
the precepts of his mentor.

“Let Old Uncle do the talking,” had counseled the sage.

To begin with, however, Urban Meyer went off at a tangent. The keen
eyes fixed themselves upon a distant table, and then he said, in a tone
low and deep: “It may interest you to know that the world’s biggest
brain is in the room.”

Brandon and Pomfret were duly impressed.

“Indeed,” said Pomfret with becoming seriousness.

“You mean the man over there?” said Brandon following the eyes of Urban
Meyer.

“Yes, the sallow one with a face like a Chicago ham.”

“Where? Show me.” Pomfret’s curiosity was roused. Urban Meyer did not
mistake geese for swans as a rule.

“Straight ahead,” said Brandon. “The long, lean, pale man. That’s
Murdwell the scientist--Gazelee Payne Murdwell who is giving his nights
and days to making a worse hell of this planet than it is already.”

“You know him?” said Urban Meyer.

“He’s a neighbor of mine,” Brandon explained. “Personally I like him,
but he won’t bear thinking about. He’s all new and all true I suppose?”
He had the air of one seeking for information.

“Sure.” It was Urban Meyer’s favorite word, but it seemed to do the
work of many at this moment. “Murdwell’s the problem for the near
future. He’s getting through to things that are best left alone. He’s
the writing on the wall. The best that can happen to the human race
just now is for Murdwell to be closed down.”

The tone had a curious authority. Somehow it made a deep impression on
Brandon.

“That man’s intellect is colossal. But he’s on the wrong tack, and
I tell him so, as I told Orville Wright when he first said that he
was going to fly. The day the Wrights got home with their damned
contraption was the worst the human race has seen since the invention
of gunpowder; and now Gazelee Payne Murdwell comes along with a promise
which it is humanity’s business to see that he never fulfills.”

“But how prevent him?” asked Brandon. “In the present phase of human
perversion, Gazelee Payne Murdwell is a prophet and a savior.”

“At this moment,” said Urban Meyer, “there’s just one thing between
the human race and Murdwell’s Law, and that thing’s God. And that’s
why I venture to hope that the Professor will have to close down.
Two years ago I didn’t believe in God, but since then I’ve changed
my outlook.” At this point he helped himself to an excellent mousse
of ham, and the host ordered a bottle of Pommery. “Since then I’ve
been down in the _Lusitania_, I’ve seen Paris saved for Europe, and
I’ve still hopes of seeing civilization saved for mankind. I say this
because I feel there’s a God standing behind it and he’s going to see
it through. I was born at Frankfort in 1849, and I’ve bled for Prussia
at Gravelotte.” The little man drew up his shirt sleeve and showed a
deep scar on his arm. “That’s a Frenchman’s saber. I was young then and
I loved the fatherland. Even at that time Prussia was the enemy of the
human race, but a boy couldn’t be expected to know that and he couldn’t
have helped himself if he had. In 1876 I went to New York; in 1890 I
became an American citizen; in 1916 I’m a citizen of the world.

“I consider that I have had exceptional facilities for seeing this
war impartially, but my nature is to look to the future. I’ve always
planned and built ahead. And as I figure it out Prussia is going to
be downed and Germany bled white. But take it from me, my friends, it
will be a very long and slow process.” There was a slight pause in the
little man’s monologue, but no contradiction was offered.

“And in the end civilization will have to save Germany. Unless she gets
a change of heart there’s no security for the time ahead. At present
she’s outside the pale, but it won’t be wise or right to let her
remain there forever. She’s a big proposition and the world owes her
something. She will have to be helped to rid herself of Prussia. How’s
it to be done--that’s the problem for the future. One thing is sure:
you won’t get her to cut herself free of her protector by ramming a
pistol down her throat.”

Brandon agreed.

“What’s your alternative?” said Pomfret.

“We must keep the communications open as well as we can. It’s the duty
of those who look to the time ahead to try to get into touch with the
German people.”

“But that’s quite impossible,” said Pomfret. “They are a set of outlaws
and perverts.”

“I admit that the present plight of the German people is just about
the biggest problem in all history.”

“You’re right. And every effort made by outsiders to help them will
simply recoil on itself.”

“It may be so. But if there is a God in the world he cares just as much
for the Teuton as he cares for anyone else.”

“Very true,” said Brandon. “And Germany must be made to see the light.
But that can only be done indirectly. The German, as the world is now
beginning to realize, has a very curious psychology. He doesn’t see
through his eyes, but through his emotions. Therefore he calls for very
special treatment.”

“Why not let him alone?” said Pomfret. “Why not let him find his own
level?”

“Because civilization can’t afford to do that. It owes it to itself to
help Germany.”

“I fully agree,” said Brandon.

“I entirely dissent,” said Pomfret, filling the glasses of his guests.
“Germany by her own considered acts has put herself outside the
comity of nations, and there’s no need to readmit her. She may lie
down with the Magyar, the Turk and the Bulgar till the crack of doom.
Civilization can do without Germany. The question is, can Germany do
without civilization?”

“In spite of her errors and her crimes,” said Urban Meyer, “you do an
injustice to a great people if you close all the doors against her.”

“We shall not agree about their greatness,” said Pomfret. “They are a
race of barbarians, with a dangerous streak of madness.”

“That’s one side of the Teuton, I admit. But on the other he’s an
idealist, a lover of the arts, an exemplary citizen. And the task of
the future is to get him back to where he was. He’s got to return to
the old ways. By the bye, that play has set me thinking.” Pomfret and
Brandon exchanged glances, but Urban Meyer went on with a curious
spontaneity, as if he were thinking aloud. “Yes, it has set my mind
working. Last night I dreamed about it, and I believe if the Kingdom of
Something Else could be presented just as I saw it in my dream it would
speak to the real heart of Germany. It has the very spirit of her folk
tales; it has the romance, the poetry, the music, the kindly people
my childhood used to make and adore. And it teaches a gospel which
might have a universal appeal. You know I’ve an immense belief in the
theater. To me it’s the true church of the time to come. And I don’t
see why the next world religion shouldn’t begin with a great play.”

Again Pomfret and Brandon exchanged glances.

“People ask what’s wrong with Christianity. Its great flaw to my mind
is that it asks too much; it is sublime but it isn’t quite a working
proposition. We won’t go into a tremendous argument, but there isn’t
the slightest doubt that in its present form it doesn’t touch the
crowd. It needs simplifying, modifying, humanizing, before it can get
right home to the man in the street. A lot of old lumber and obsolete
formulas will have to find their way to the scrap heap. The great
truths can still be there, but the religion of the future has got to
think more of this world and less of the next. And I’m by no means sure
that the mind which conceived the idea of the Kingdom of the Something
Else is not going to meet the deepest need of mankind at the present
time.”

Brandon shot a glance of triumph at Pomfret, but even in that moment of
exaltation he remembered the counsel of the sage.

“At the first opportunity I should like to put up that play in New York
at my biggest theater. There would be an all-star cast and a special
orchestra, and in every detail it would be absolutely the greatest
production ever seen in the States or anywhere else.”

“And you would present it exactly as it is written?” said Pomfret in a
matter-of-fact tone.

“Yes. Not a line would be altered. It’s not ordinary theater stuff. In
this case it’s the spirit of the thing that is going to matter and
that must not be tampered with on any account.”

Pomfret sat, a picture of whimsical incredulity, but Brandon, burning
with the zeal of the evangelist, was now unequal to the change that the
prudence of this world had laid upon him. Urban Meyer had been visited
by the divine wisdom, and Brandon could not withhold acknowledgment of
a fact so signal and so astonishing.

“The theater is my religion,” the little man went on, and his queer
eyes grew suddenly fixed as if they were looking at something. “I
believe in it as I believe in nothing else. When you’ve watched
millions of people going crazy over stunts like ‘Baby’s Bedsocks,’
the original smile-with-a-tear-in-it, you ask yourself what could be
done by a real play with a live message. As I say, the theater is the
church of the future. There’s no limit to its power; it speaks to the
masses, cheers them, strengthens them, makes them healthy, lifts them
up; it takes them into worlds beyond their own. And they understand its
language.

“Now this play, as I see it, is a test case. It’s not theater stuff
of the ordinary brand and it’s got to be played just as it is, in the
spirit of reverence. It may fall down, and fall down badly, but I’d
like to produce it as an act of faith, for the love I bear humanity.”

Pomfret could hardly believe his ears. Something had happened to the
little man. He had known Urban Meyer nearly twenty years, and it
was hard to relate this gush of altruism with the impresario whose
astuteness was a byword all over the world. For one thing, and it
amused Pomfret vastly, in the stress of his enthusiasm he had even
forgotten to discuss the terms of the contract.

They came to that presently, and then a sight for the gods presented
itself. With the aid of racial instincts ruthlessly applied, Urban
Meyer had taken an immense fortune out of the theater, but now,
entering it as a missionary, he was willing to make a contract which
added greatly to Pomfret’s perplexity.

“It’s double what I’ve ever offered to a new man,” said Urban Meyer,
“but as I say, this production is going to be an act of faith. I
believe in God, I believe in the theater, I believe in this play and
that’s the basis on which I invite the world to come in. If it falls
down I may be out a hundred thousand dollars, but I shall not grudge a
nickel, because no man can serve God and serve Mammon at the same time.”

Moreover, to judge by a new glow in a quaintly Semitic countenance,
Urban Meyer felt immensely strengthened by being in a position to make
that assertion. He was not puffed up, but a light of enthusiasm played
over his face which somehow made him better to look at. “Nothing is but
thinking makes it so! To a man of imagination that means all that ever
was and ever will be. And if you keep on expecting miracles to happen,
miracles are bound to happen--if only you expect in the right way.”

Pomfret could only smile perplexedly, but Brandon, flooded by a
happiness rare and strange, was overborne by the workings of the divine
providence. For a moment he was submerged by wild speculations, and
then he awoke with a start to the fact that a sudden hand had been laid
on his shoulder.




XXXVIII


“HULLOA, Murd! You’re looking cheap.” Brandon awoke to the sound of
the voice of Urban Meyer. En route from the luncheon table, Professor
Murdwell had tarried to pass the time of day with a celebrated
compatriot. A kind of freemasonry exists in all lands among the
supereminent, and these two shining examples knew how to pay the tacit
homage due to conspicuous merit.

“Not well, Murd?” The all-seeing eye of Urban Meyer was fixed like a
bead on the scientist.

“Nothing, my boy,” was the light answer. “A bit run down, that’s all.
As a fact I’m off now to see my doctor. I can soon be put right.
How are you, my friend?” The kindly pressure increased on Brandon’s
shoulder. “It’s very good to see you on your feet again. I heard the
other day from old Parson What’s-his-name that you had managed to find
a cure, although I’m bound to say that when I saw you last, back in the
fall, I’d about given you up. However--I’m more than glad--I’m simply
delighted.” And with the benign air of the _bon enfant_, Professor
Murdwell followed in the wake of Bud and Jooly, who had gone into the
hall.

“He mayn’t know it,” said Urban Meyer in a low voice, “but that man’s
got death in his face.”

Brandon was startled by the tone. It had an uncanny prescience which
made him feel uncomfortable.

“If looks mean anything his number’s up. Personally he’s a good
fellow--one of the best alive--but he’s been touching things which up
till now were _verboten_. Let us pray to God they always will be.”

How do you know all this?--was the question which rose to the tip of
Brandon’s tongue. But he refrained from asking it. Murdwell’s face had
a curious ashen hue, and now that its meaning had been pointed out it
was not to be mistaken. As for the second part of the statement, made
with equal authority, it gave an impression of curious insight into
certain phenomena, which it would be futile to discuss.

In the hall, over coffee and cigars, the talk went on. Brandon felt
himself living in a kind of wonderland of which Urban Meyer was king.
The little man’s words flowed on in soft, odd, detached syllables, yet
they were alive with a magic interest for one who shared his faith. As
for Pomfret, tasting deliberately a masterpiece among cigars, he had to
admit in the recesses of an almost uncomfortably sagacious mind, that
never in the whole course of its owner’s experience had it been so
completely at a loss.

It was impossible to recognize the Urban Meyer of commerce. And to find
one of the strongest brains of the age thrown off its balance by a mere
stage play, the stuff in which it was always trafficking, was simply
ludicrous. In the case of Brandon it was less surprising. For one thing
he had hardly recovered from a terrible illness; and again he came to
the theater a raw amateur. But Urban Meyer! Yes, it was quite true that
the day of miracles was not yet past!

By the time they had said good-by to the little man and had sauntered
round the corner into Saint James’s Street as far as Brandon’s club,
Pomfret’s amazement had grown quite disconcerting.

“I fancy when Old Uncle jumped from the _Lusitania_ it shook him up a
bit,” he said in a feeble attempt at self-protection. “He _can’t_ be
the man he was.”

“Because he sees the plenary inspiration in the Kingdom of the
Something Else?”

“To think of that old hard-shell turning the theater into a church! Ye
gods! It’s the most ironical thing I ever heard. Still, he can afford
himself little luxuries of that kind. He’s making his soul no doubt.”

“At any rate,” said Brandon, “he’ll deserve well of heaven if he can
reform the Boche.”

Before Pomfret could make suitable reply they walked into the arms of
George Speke, who was augustly descending the steps of the stronghold
of the Whigs.

“What!” he cried. “You!” His eyes raked Brandon from top to toe. “I
can’t believe it. And one hears people say that miracles don’t happen.”

“I plead guilty to being among them,” said Pomfret; in the presence of
Speke’s amazement he had a sense of intellectual relief.

“Science won’t acknowledge it as a miracle,” said Brandon. “It has
a theory which fully covers the case. It was explained to me last
night by Bowood, the nerve man. I forget what he called it--but what
the thing amounts to is that functional reaction has been induced by
counter-shock--excuse the phraseology--but Bowood says the thing is
constantly occurring.”

“I affirm it as a miracle,” said Speke.

“I, too,” said Brandon. “More has happened in my case than therapeutics
can explain. I’ve been given a new soul as well as a new body. But
we won’t go into that now. At this particular moment I want to talk
to you about that fantastically absurd official, the Censor of Stage
Plays.”

But the subject was deferred until the following evening when the two
men dined together. Even then George Speke was not very illuminating.
After all, the censorship of stage plays was a departmental matter,
and this habitual member of governments had the departmental mind. A
harmless functionary had been much attacked in the public press by the
kind of people who attack every kind of institution, but experience had
proved him to be at once wise, necessary, and convenient.

“Wise! Necessary! Convenient!” said Brandon, “to invest a single
individual of cynical mediocrity with absolute power? It’s an insult to
every pen in the realm.”

Speke laughed at the vehemence but admitted the truth. Yet a threadbare
controversy left him cold. To be quite candid, the theater was
negligible, the art of dramatic writing equally so. Far better that
both should perish than that either should sully the mind of the
humblest citizen of Imperial Rome.




XXXIX


IN the course of the next few days Brandon interviewed various
specialists, and then by their advice he went to Brighton for two
months. The result was such a steady gain in physical force and mental
equilibrium that he was able to resume his military duties.

Not by his own request was he spared the boredom, the misery, the
ghoulish horror of the trenches. The higher expediency was able to
realize that men of Brandon’s age, particularly if they have once been
badly knocked out, don’t pay for cartage to France. Therefore he was
given a commission and sent to the north to train new units.

He didn’t complain. Whatever his job, he would have taken off his coat
and set to. He was no subscriber to the military fetish, nothing would
ever make him one, but in August, 1914, he had given his services
unconditionally to his country and he was not the man to shirk the
obligation into which he had entered.

To one of subtle perceptions and fastidious culture, the teaching
of a lot of “bandy-legged coal-shovelers” to form fours, and to hurl
an imaginary bomb at an imaginary Hun should have been a wearisome,
soul-destroying affair. Yet somehow it was not. There was a time when
in spite of his honest, democratic liberalism, he would have been tried
beyond endurance by the fantastic boredom of it all. But that time
had passed. Never again could the human factor, however primitive, be
without its meaning. He had been wrought upon by a miracle, and it
abided with him during every hour of the new life.

His thoughts were often with John Smith. Enshrined in Brandon’s
heart as a divine symbol, he was the key to a Mystery which had the
power to cleanse even the thing called war of its bestial obscenity.
Many a night when he came back dog-tired and heart-sore, to a dirty,
comfortless room and an ill-cooked meal in a rude, miserable colliery
township whose like he had never seen, he was sustained by the sublime
faith of one who, for the sake of the love he bore his kind, had dared
to transcend reason in order to affirm it.

Many a night in the fetid air of a bedroom whose window could not be
persuaded to open, he lay on a broken-backed mattress trying to relate
this divine friend with the humanity through whose travail he had
found expression. Who and what was this portent? Was he akin to the
August Founder of Christianity? Was he a madman hugging a crazy but
pathetic and terrible delusion? Or was he the superman of which the
World Spirit had long been dreaming, a great clairvoyant able to summon
representative souls from the astral plane?

It must be left to the future to decide. At the best these
were fantastic speculations, but they were now the _clou_ of a
forward-looking soul. Only these could sustain it in the path of duty.
Week by week, it was being borne in upon Brandon that the sword could
never hope to achieve anything worth achieving. Humanity was too
complex and it was poisoned at the roots. Prussia after all was only
a question of degree. Unless a change took place in the heart of man,
these splendid, simple chaps with their debased forms of speech, their
crudeness and their ignorance, would hurl their bombs in vain.

How he loved these bandy-legged warriors who never opened their mouths
without defiling his ears. Deeper even than the spirit of race was the
sense of human brotherhood. It resolved every difficulty, it unlocked
every door. And the key had come to him by means of the inmate of
Wellwood who had received it in turn from the divine mystic of the
hills of Galilee.

The weeks went by in their weariness, yet nothing happened to the
world. Months ago Urban Meyer had returned to America and the play
had gone with him. The shrewd Pomfret had been made an agent for
the author, in order to protect the interests of John Smith, but he
received no word from New York beyond an intimation that the play had
been mysteriously “hung up.” The news was not unexpected, yet he never
doubted that sooner or later Urban Meyer would carry out his fixed
intention of producing it.

In the meantime, Brandon wrote several letters to the inmate of
Wellwood. The new turn of events was revealed, and great stress laid
upon the supreme good fortune which so far had attended the play.
To have convinced such a man as Urban Meyer of its almost plenary
inspiration meant that its destiny was on the way to fulfillment.

The letters Brandon received in answer must have puzzled him greatly,
had they not squared so exactly with the theory he had formed. Full as
they were of warm and deep feeling, they yet seemed remote from the
conditions of practical life. Even their note of sure faith was open to
misinterpretation. There was no recognition of the singular providence
which had set Urban Meyer on the track of the play, or if there was,
it took for granted that the little man was the chosen instrument of
God. Like Brandon himself, he was only a medium, through which Heaven
was to resolve a high and awful issue.

Brandon received no second command to Wellwood, and he had not
the courage to make pilgrimage without it. But as the long months
passed and he grew more secure in physical power, the impression of
the dreamlike December journey remained ineffaceably vivid. Time
strengthened a fervent belief in the sublime genius of John Smith,
but the wild speculations to which that belief gave rise led to one
inescapable conclusion which in the last resort he could not quite find
the courage to embrace openly. The disciple was thrilled by the tone
of each letter he received, but nineteen centuries had passed since
the Master had walked among men; and Brandon, with his own work in the
world yet to do, could only feel that Faith itself besought him not to
go too far beyond the poor, limited, human ken.

In order to fulfill the common daily round, he felt bound to hold aloof
from John Smith, yet the man himself was never out of his thoughts.
And not for a moment did he forget a sacred task. Months went by, the
brief occasional letters ceased, and then Brandon sent an emissary to
Wellwood, so that he might gain first-hand knowledge without incurring
the terrible risk his every instinct warned him must attend a personal
visit.

Mr. Perry-Hennington was the chosen vehicle. Between the two men there
had been a reconciliation. The return of health had enabled Brandon to
shed much of his animosity; besides, he saw that if John Smith’s view
of his mission was the true one, such a man as the vicar of Penfold
could hardly be more than a humble catspaw of destiny. That good, but
narrow and obtuse man, was perhaps only the unconscious means by which
a second world-drama was to unfold itself.

In the autumn Brandon was granted a few days’ leave. After weary months
of servitude in the arid north, a week at Hart’s Ghyll, among his own
people, was like a breath of heaven. And it synchronized with a tide of
greater events.

These began with a morning call from the vicar. A very different
Gervase Brandon received him now in that glorious room, which, however,
for them both, must always hold memories of anxious and embittered
conflict. The squire of Hart’s Ghyll had emerged from the long night
of the soul, and even to this closed mind he was far more than the
Gervase Brandon of old. In returning to that physical world which he
loved so well, he had gained enlargement. Something had been added
to a noble liberality; a softness, an immanence of the spirit, which
Mr. Perry-Hennington was quick to ascribe to his favorite process of
purification by suffering.

The vicar was pleased by the warmth of his reception; and he had
already had a sign of Brandon’s change of attitude. The previous day,
at Brandon’s request, he had paid a visit to Wellwood. And in that
request, Mr. Perry-Hennington saw a tacit admission of the justice of
his actions; he also saw that Brandon, now clothed in his right mind,
was fully alive to his own errors in the past.

“Well, my dear Gervase,” he said with full-toned heartiness, the
underside of which was magnanimity, “yesterday, as you suggested, I
went to Wellwood to see our friend.”

“More than good of you,” said Brandon, his eyes lighted by gratitude
and eagerness. “An act of real charity. I could have gone myself, of
course, but I don’t quite trust myself in the matter--that is to say--”

“Quite so--I understand and appreciate that. And I am particularly glad
you left it to me to form my own impressions.”

“Well?”

“In the first place, I had a long talk with Dr. Thorp, who by the way
is a singularly experienced and broad-minded man.”

“I fully agree.”

“Well, I’m bound to say that he grew quite enthusiastic over the poor
dear fellow. In every way he is a most exemplary patient; indeed, I was
told that he wields a truly remarkable moral influence over the whole
establishment, inmates and nursing staff alike.”

“I learned that many months ago.”

“It is very surprising that it should be so.” The vicar’s air was one
of perplexity. “But Dr. Thorp considers John Smith an extraordinary
case.”

“So I have gathered.”

“He suffers, of course, from an obscure form of religious mania, which
fully justifies his detention, but at the same time he leads the life
of a saint.”

“How is his health?”

A cloud came on the vicar’s face. He did not answer the question at
once. At last he said: “Let me prepare you for bad news. I regret to
say that he is slowly dying.”

Brandon caught his breath sharply. He did not try to conceal his
distress. He put a dozen eager questions. The announcement had come as
a great blow.

“Dr. Thorp holds out no hope that his life will be a long one,” said
the vicar. “Apart from the ravages of his disease, the spirit appears
to be wearing out the body. He doesn’t take enough nourishment. He
simply can’t be induced to touch flesh meat in any form; in fact for
many weeks he has been existing almost entirely on bread and water.”

“He does not wish to live?”

“I think he longs for the other and the better world.”

“That, at any rate, is perhaps not altogether surprising.”

The thrust might not have been intentional, but the shadow deepened on
the vicar’s face. “It is not,” he said. “Yet he is so well cared for,
he is allowed such liberty, his relations with all the other inmates
are so charmingly harmonious, that it is hard to see how the freedom of
the outer world could add to his present happiness; that, at any rate,
is Dr. Thorp’s view. His troubles, odd as it may seem, do not spring
from his immediate surroundings; they spring from the present state
of the world. His mania has crystallized into a strange form. He has
become pathetically convinced that he is the Savior, and he spends his
whole time in fasting and prayer.”

“Did you see him?”

“Yes.” The vicar paused an instant, and in that instant Brandon
literally devoured the subtly changing face of the man before him. “Not
only did I see him, I was permitted to speak to him. Moreover, he sent
you a message. You are always to remember that one unconverted believer
may save the whole world.” As the vicar repeated the odd phrase, his
eye met Brandon’s and a silence followed.

“I shall never forget the way he said it,” Mr. Perry-Hennington went
on. “The tone of his voice, the look of his eyes gave one quite an
uncanny feeling. Whether it was the mental and physical state of the
poor man himself, or whether it was his surroundings, I cannot say,
but somehow I can’t get the picture of him as he spoke those words out
of my mind. It’s weak, I know, but the whole of last night I lay awake
thinking of Wellwood, and this poor dear fellow, John Smith.”

“Was he so different from what you expected to find him?”

“Somehow he was. His disease has taken such a curious form. And in that
strange place, in the midst of a lot of old men, afflicted like himself
with various fantastic delusions, he has an air of authority which is
really most striking--I am bound to say is really most striking.”

“I cannot tell you how interested I am to hear you say that,” was
Brandon’s eager rejoinder.

“If one had not continually said to oneself: ‘This gloomy place,
haunted with dead souls, is Wellwood Asylum,’ one might even have
come under a strange spell. Dr. Thorp says the freakish power of some
of these broken-down intellects is amazing; and to see them seated
around that large and somber room engaged in what John Smith calls ‘the
correlation of human experience,’ is at once the most tragic and the
most pathetic sight I have ever witnessed.”

“It is a sight that I, at any rate, shall take to my grave.” As Brandon
saw again the picture by the inward eye, he was shaken by a wild
tremor. “Henceforth, I shall see it always in this life, and I look to
see it in the next.”

“Yes,” said the vicar. “I can well understand your feeling about it.”

Brandon gave a little shudder; and then, after a silence he said: “May
I ask what impression you formed of our poor friend?”

“It is most difficult to put it into words. Physically and mentally
he has undergone a very curious change; and he appears to wield a
strange power over all with whom he comes in contact. As I say, I felt
it myself. I shall never forget the shock I had when those eyes emerged
from that bearded face. For a moment one could have almost believed
oneself in the presence of Someone Else. Then I remembered where I was,
but it needed an effort I assure you.”

“Do you still feel that Wellwood is the place for him?”

“Yes, I do. I discussed the matter with Dr. Thorp, and he is strongly
of the opinion that the poor fellow is better off at Wellwood than he
would be elsewhere. They have come to love him there. He is extremely
well cared for, he never complains of the loss of personal liberty,
and, as I say, there is every reason to think that his days are
numbered.”

“Dr. Thorp has no doubt on that point?”

“None. The poor fellow is failing physically. At the present time he
appears to live more in another world than he does in this. One does
not pretend to know what that other world is or may be. Apparently it
is a kind of mystical dreamland, in which he persuades himself that he
communicates with departed spirits. And there are times when he enters
a soul condition which lies outside Dr. Thorp’s own experience of
psychical phenomena. In fact, he considers John Smith to be by far the
most baffling and complex case with which he has ever had to deal.”

A number of other questions Brandon put to the vicar, in the hope
of light from an authentic source upon a very remarkable matter.
For himself he could only account for it by means of a far-fetched
hypothesis, with which he knew that Mr. Perry-Hennington was the last
man in the world likely to agree. All the same, one clear fact emerged
from this conversation. There was a change in the vicar. Could it be
that, since his recent visit to Wellwood, Mr. Perry-Hennington had
begun to realize that there might be more things in earth and heaven
than his philosophy had dreamed of hitherto?




XL


AFTER luncheon that same day, the salutary process now at work in
the vicar’s mind received a further stimulus. He was to find himself
involved in a matter at once painful and unexpected, and the impression
left upon him was deeply perplexing.

At the urgent request of Professor Murdwell, who had just returned
from New York, he had promised to go to Longwood that afternoon. Mr.
Murdwell had been out of the country six months, and now that he had
got back, almost his first act had been to send for the vicar.

As Mr. Perry-Hennington made stately progress on an antiquated tricycle
along the leafy carpet of the wind-bitten autumn lanes, he was far from
anticipating the sad surprise that was in store. In the spring, when
last at Longwood, he had been struck by the fact that his neighbor
was not looking particularly well, and he had ventured to remark upon
it. Mr. Murdwell had made light of the matter. But this afternoon, as
soon as the vicar had been ushered into the cozy room in which the
scientist sat alone, he received a shock. A great change had taken
place in a few months. The alert, far-looking eyes had lost their
luster, the cheeks had fallen in, the face of keenness and power was
terribly ravaged by disease.

Mr. Murdwell rose with the old air of courtesy to receive his visitor,
but the effort was slow and painful.

“Good of you to come, sir,” he said, motioning his visitor to a chair,
and then half collapsing into his own. He looked at the vicar with a
rather forlorn smile. “I’m a very sick man these days,” he said.

The vicar was a little distressed by the air of complete helplessness.
“I hope it’s nothing serious,” he said.

“I’ve come home to die,” said Mr. Murdwell, with the calmness of a
stoic.

The words were a shock to the vicar.

“The word ‘home’ mustn’t surprise you. I come of clean-run stock; I
belong to the old faith and the old blood. As the world goes just now,
I feel that I am among my own people, and I want you to lay me yonder
in your little churchyard on a good Sussex hillside.”

Mr. Perry-Hennington felt a growing dismay. “I venture to hope,” he
said, “that you will be spared to us a long time yet.”

“A week or so at the most.” Infinite weariness was in the voice. “You
are a good and sensible man, and I am going to talk to you frankly. The
thought of leaving my wife and girl hurts like a knife; and of course
my work means a very great deal to me. I have simply lived in it;
indeed the truth is, I have lived in it too much. And it is now being
brought home to me that it is for the ultimate good of humanity that it
should remain unfinished.”

The vicar, grieved and amazed, was unable to say anything. He had quite
a regard for this man of original and powerful mind, and it shocked him
deeply to find him in his present state.

“It seems that at present there are certain things which are still
forbidden to science. A year ago I was fully convinced that such was
not the case. But that view was premature. At that time the whole
question raised by Murdwell’s Law was still _sub judice_. The verdict
has now been given. I have a cancer, which must kill me long before I
am able to complete my researches. And I think you, sir, and all who
see the cosmos at your particular angle are fully entitled to regard
this as the act of God.”

The vicar remained silent, but with an intense and painful interest he
followed the revelations of the dying man.

“Thus far shalt thou go and no farther! The power, or the group of
powers, which controls the development of mankind, whispered those
words to me a year ago. But I chose to disregard them. I was too deeply
committed to my studies, which, had I been allowed to pursue them to
their logical conclusion, would have revolutionized war and everything
else on this planet. There is no need to make a secret of the fact
that, by the operation of Murdwell’s Law, I have been able to trace the
existence of an element hitherto unknown. It has been given the name of
vitalium, and my hope, and the hope of the distinguished men of science
associated with me, was that its bearing on present events would be
decisive. I still hold the theory that this element contains powers and
properties compared with which all others in the purview of man are
insignificant. For instance, I said that it was within the competence
of vitalium to destroy an enemy fleet at a distance of twenty thousand
miles. But as I was warned at the time the prophecy was made, and as
I know beyond all question now, I am not to be allowed to prove my
proposition.

“Prometheus is not to be allowed to steal the fire from heaven. And
well it is for mankind that some things are still forbidden to it.
Whether that will always be the case I dare not prophesy. But at this
moment I have no doubt that Gazelee Payne Murdwell is the writing on
the wall for the human race. Put that on my tombstone in your Sussex
churchyard.”

The vicar was strangely moved.

“Another theory I have formed, which I am not to be allowed to prove,
is that with the aid of vitalium it is possible to communicate with
other planets. There is little doubt that some of them do communicate
with one another, and I am inclined to think that the terrible crisis
the world is now passing through is a reaction to events in other
places. Man is only at the threshold of the knowable. He is surrounded
by many forces of which he knows little or nothing. Some of these are
inimical. The future has terrible problems for the human race, and well
it is that it cannot foresee them.

“As for this terrible struggle, in which I am proud to think my two
boys are bearing a part, the end is not yet in sight. The resources of
the enemy exceed all computation, and we don’t know what forces hostile
to man stand behind them.”

“It may be so, Mr. Murdwell.” The vicar, greatly wrought upon, spoke
in a voice of deep emotion. “We are in the hands of God. And I am
convinced that He is fighting for us, and therefore in the end our
cause must prevail.”

The man of science smiled wanly. “I cannot form a conception of God in
terms of atomic energy. And yet I feel with you, as I have always felt,
that there is a Friend behind phenomena. And I am inclined to believe,
now that we have a mass of evidence to guide us, that the first phase
of this war proved that very clearly. The victory of the Marne was a
signal manifestation. By all the rules of the game, at the moment the
enemy of mankind fell on Europe in her sleep, France was irretrievably
lost, and civilization with her. But something happened which was not
in the textbooks. And in the perpetual recurrence of that Something
lies the one hope for the human race.”

“Well, Mr. Murdwell”--the vicar spoke very earnestly--“as a humble
servant and minister of God, I can only say that I share your belief.
Whatever may happen to us, I feel that the human race could not have
got as far as it has, unless a special providence had always stood
behind it. My faith is, that this providence will not be withdrawn in
the world’s darkest hour.”

“I venture to think that you are right,” said the dying man. “But as I
say, do not ever forget that Gazelee Payne Murdwell is the writing on
the wall for the human race.”

This talk with Mr. Murdwell made a deep impression on the vicar. Unable
by nature or mental habit to accept all the premises of an abnormal
thinker, it was beginning to strike Mr. Perry-Hennington with new and
rather bewildering force, that truth has many aspects. At Wellwood
the previous day he had felt a vague distrust of his own perceptions.
Things were not quite as they seemed. Even poor, deranged John Smith
could not be dismissed by a simple formula. It had suddenly dawned
on a closed mind that a door was opening on the unknown. Somehow the
relation of John Smith to many dimly understood phenomena could not
be bridged by a phrase. And a feeling of imperfect knowledge was
intensified by contact with this other remarkable personality. One must
be read in the light of the other. Murdwell was the antithesis, the
negation of John Smith. And the nature of things being as it was, each
must have his own meaning, his own message to be related to the sum of
human experience.




XLI


DISTRESSED by the interview with his neighbor, the vicar took the first
chance of going to Hart’s Ghyll with the sad news. He had a craving
to unburden his mind. And Brandon, with whom he was now on terms of
complete amity, was the one person likely to share an almost painful
interest in Murdwell’s Law and its discoverer.

Brandon, indeed, was only too ready to discuss the matter. The tenant
of Longwood had loomed large in his thoughts from the hour in which he
had first had the privilege of knowing him. To the mind of a Gervase
Brandon, he was a portent, a phenomenon; in sober truth “the writing
on the wall for the human race.” But the vicar’s news caused Brandon
less concern than might have been the case had he not been able in a
measure to anticipate and therefore to discount it. He recalled his
last glimpse of Professor Murdwell in London, and the prophetic words
of Urban Meyer.

“A terrible nemesis,” said the vicar. “A great tragedy.”

“An intervention of a merciful providence,” was Brandon’s rejoinder.

“No doubt--if his theories are rooted in scientific fact. To me, I
confess, they seem wholly fantastic. They suggest megalomania. How does
Murdwell’s Law stand scientifically?”

“It is accepted by the mathematician, and is said to provide a key to
certain unknown forces in the physical world. It has given rise to
an immense amount of speculation, and for some little time past very
remarkable developments have been predicted.”

“Which may not now materialize?”

“Let us hope not. Murdwell himself is another Newton, but his Law opens
the door to sheer diabolism on a cosmic scale. May its terrible secrets
perish with him!--that’s the best the poor race of humans has to hope
for.”

The vicar fully agreed. “Researches of this kind are surely the
negation of God,” he said.

“I think with you. But heads vastly better than mine think otherwise.
Good and evil are interchangeable terms in our modern world of T. N. T.
and the U-boat.”

“That I shall never believe. Black is black, white is white.” It was
the fighting tone, yet there was somehow a difference.

“I shall not contradict you,” said Brandon, with a smile, which had
none of the old antagonism. “For one thing, the spectrum has shifted
its angle since last we discussed the subject. I see you, my dear
friend, and the views you hold, in a new light. But apart from that I
am simply burning to talk about something else. I think I once told you
that John Smith had written a play.”

“A play, was it?” Almost in spite of himself, there came an odd
constraint to the vicar’s tone. “I was under the impression that it was
a poem.”

“There was a poem. But there was also a play, which I think I once
mentioned.”

“You may have.” Constraint was still there. “But whichever it is--does
it really matter? Poor dear fellow!”

“Yes, it matters intensely.” The sudden gleam of excitement took the
vicar by surprise. “The news has just reached me that the play has been
produced in New York.”

Mr. Perry-Hennington agreed that the fact was remarkable, but far
less so than its production in London would have been. After all, the
Americans were a very curious people.

“But it starts with every augury of world-wide success.”

“Isn’t that the American way? Mustn’t they always be licking creation
over there?”

Brandon was inclined to admit the indictment. “But,” said he, “they
generally have a solid basis of fact to work on before they start doing
that. And in this case they appear to have found it. The man who has
dared to produce this play is convinced that it will prove a landmark
in the history of the drama at any rate.”

“Really!” The vicar pursed cautious, half-incredulous lips. “But I’m
afraid the theater conveys nothing to me--the modern theater, that is.
Of course I’ve read Shakespeare and the Greek tragedies, and I once
saw Irving in Hamlet--very impressive he was--but to me the theater in
general is so much Volapuk.”

“Still,” persisted Brandon, “I hope you will allow it to be truly
remarkable that a people so sagacious, who in works of creative
imagination are better judges than ourselves, should be carried off
their feet by the dramatic genius of our local village idiot.”

An ever-increasing perception of the situation’s irony lured Brandon to
a little intellectual byplay. Perhaps to have resisted it would have
been more than human. And as he had staked all upon the transcendent
powers of his friend, and an impartial court had now declared in
his favor, this moment of self-vindication came to him as the most
delicious of his life.

Somehow it did him good to watch a cloud gather slowly over the
vicar’s craggily unexpressive face. An abyss was opening in Mr.
Perry-Hennington’s mental life. Things were happening which threatened
to undermine his moral and intellectual values. Brandon could almost
have pitied him. And yet it was hardly possible to pity the vicar’s
particular brand of arrogance, or, in this case, to forget the crime it
had wrought.

“Urban Meyer,” Brandon went on in his quiet voice, “is the world’s
foremost theatrical manager. And he writes to say that, were his
theater six times its present size, it could not accommodate the crowds
which flock to it daily.”

“Really!” said the vicar. “A very curious people, the Americans.”

“As you say, a very curious people. And this abnormally shrewd and
far-sighted little German Jew has already arranged for the play’s
production at Stockholm, Christiania, and also at the Hague.”

“Some kind of propaganda, I presume.” There was a sudden stiffening of
the vicar’s tone.

“It may be so. The aim of the play is to heal the wounds of the world,
so I suppose it is a kind of propaganda. But it may interest you to
know that Christiansen, the great Scandinavian poet and dramatist,
has already prepared a version for the Stockholm state theater, that
Hjalmars is doing the same for Denmark, Van Roon for Holland, and that
it has been banned in London.”

“Ah!” said Mr. Perry-Hennington. And then with a show of fight which
amused Brandon, he added, “Wisely, no doubt.”

“In other words, the Censor of Stage Plays has completely justified his
existence.”

“I’m afraid I can’t offer an opinion on that point,” said the vicar,
slowly renewing his dignity.

“Only the pen of a Swift or a Voltaire could do justice to that sublime
individual. Here we have a country whose proud boast is that it alone
among European states is really free, which is sacrificing its young
men by the million in order to overthrow Prussianism, imposing such
fetters upon intellectual liberty that one can only gasp.”

“Rightly no doubt.” Of late deadly blows had been aimed at the vicar’s
mental security, but there was still a kick in the old Adam. “In
intellectual matters absolute freedom becomes anarchy, and that would
be intolerable, even in a democratic country. The state is bound to
devise a means of holding it in check. Of this play I know nothing,
nor am I competent to speak of plays in general, but prima facie the
government is fully justified in suppressing it. No good thing can come
out of Babylon.”

“Or in other words out of Wellwood Asylum.”

“One does not go quite so far as to say that,” said the vicar
thoughtfully.

“An interesting admission!”

“Which perhaps one oughtn’t to make,” said the vicar rather uneasily.
And then, as if a little shocked by his own boldness, he hastened to
quit such perilous ground. “To return to stage plays. Things of that
kind will not help us to win the war.”

“And yet the pen is mightier than the sword.”

“That is a dark saying I have never been able to understand. We live
not by words but by deeds, and never more so than in this stern time.”

“A play may be a great deed.”

“If it be sufficiently inspired. But there is much virtue in an ‘if.’”

Brandon did not continue the argument. Feeling the ground on which he
stood to be impregnable, he could well afford not to do so. Besides
it was scarcely the act of a friend to press the vicar too hard in
the present amazing circumstances. He was no longer intrenched in
self-security. If certain odd changes of manner meant anything,
the walls of his little world were falling in, and a perplexed and
bewildered Thomas Perry-Hennington was now visible amid the ruins.




XLII


THE very remarkable news from New York gave Brandon, for the rest
of his brief stay at Hart’s Ghyll, a feeling of almost perilous
exhilaration. Since his recovery, less than a year ago, his whole life
had been a subtle embodiment of the miraculous. And the letter from
Urban Meyer had intensified the sense of the miraculous to such a
degree, that at first it hardly seemed possible to meet the bald facts
of the case in its new aspect and remain perfectly rational. For more
years than Brandon cared to count, he had held the cold faith that
miracles do not occur; it had now been proved to him, beyond a doubt,
that miracles do occur, and he had to face the truth squarely, and yet
continue in the work of the world.

To make his task the more difficult, he could not help feeling that his
present job was one for which he was ill-qualified; certainly it was
not the one he would have chosen. Somehow it filled him with a deep
repugnance to train others in the art of killing, even in the art of
killing the Hun; but it was not for him to decide where such powers as
he had could be of most use to the state. He did not quarrel with the
edict which declared him unfit for the trenches, but there were times
when he would almost have preferred their particularly foul brand of
boredom to the dismal routine of acquiring a parade voice, and the
grind of rubbing up his mathematics, a branch of knowledge in which he
had never shone.

It came to him, therefore, with a sense of grateful relief, when one
day, about a week after he had returned to his unit, a letter reached
him of an informal friendliness, yet written on government paper. It
said:

                                             _Whitehall,
                                             December 2._

  MY DEAR BRANDON:

  If a square peg can be persuaded to forsake a round hole, some of us
  here feel that the country might make a more profitable use of your
  services, that is to say, there is an opportunity to give your highly
  specialized qualities freer play. A ministry of Social Reconstruction
  is being formed, to deal mainly with post-war problems--it is not
  quite our English way to take time by the forelock in this audacious
  fashion, but some of our Colonial friends are teaching us a thing or
  two--and last night in conversation with Prowse and Mortimer among
  others, your name came up. We agreed that your particular light is
  not one to hide under a bushel of coal. One shudders to think of the
  number of tricks of the kind that have been played already, but at
  last we are beginning to realize that the country can’t afford it. So
  if you will consent to work under Prowse, with or without payment, I
  think the War Office can be persuaded to spare you for a larger sphere
  of usefulness.

                                        Yours ever,
                                             GEORGE SPEKE.

In the depths of his boredom Brandon could have kissed the letter,
and have wept for joy. The tact of an expert handler of men, who well
understood the bundle of quixotisms with whom he had to deal, had
played the tempter’s part with rare success. A letter of that kind left
no doubt that the country was about to gain enormously by depleting the
Tynesi de Terriers of a morbidly conscientious subaltern, while at the
same time enriching a government department with a real live ex-fellow
of Gamaliel.

It was not until early in the new year, however, that Brandon
was transferred to a wooden structure in Saint James’s Park, the
headquarters of the newly-created department. He was almost ashamed
to find how much more congenial was the work he had now to do. To the
really constructive mind, there is something repellent in the naïve
formulas, and the crude paraphernalia of mere destruction. Here in the
new “billet” was scope for a rather special order of brain. He was able
to look forward to a future in which a new England would arise. There
were already portents in the sky, portents which told him that the
world of the future was going to be a very different place from the
world of the past. Much depended on whether the grim specter of war
could be laid with reasonable finality for a long time to come, but
from the day in which he took up his new labors he did not doubt that,
whatever the final fate of Prussia, the issue of Armageddon itself
would be a nobler, a broader spirit in the old land which he loved so
dearly, and a freer, humaner world for every race that had to live in
it.

His position in the Social Reconstruction Bureau was one of importance.
Long before the war, even before he came into the Hart’s Ghyll
property, it had been his ambition to make the world a rather better
place for other people to inhabit. And the opportunities which came to
him now gave rare scope to a reawakened energy. A marvelous field had
been offered to this protagonist of works and faith.

In spite of the last terrible clinch in which the new world as well as
the old was now involved, these were great days for Brandon. His powers
burgeoned nobly in the service of that nation which had now definitely
emerged, in spite of all her limitations and her legacies from the
past, as the banner bearer of civilization.

Deep in his heart lay the faith that through blood and tears the whole
race of men would be born again. And month by month that faith grew,
even amid the final stupendous phase when the specter of famine stalked
through the land. Moreover, he had a sense of personal election. A
promise had been made to him, and through him, to his fellows. “One
unconverted believer” was now the living witness that all the old
prophecies were true.

Every living thing in the world around him, of which a supernal Being
was the center, had a new meaning, a new force, a new divinity.
Unsuspected powers were now his; latent faculties allowed him to live
more abundantly. He looked up where once a skeptic’s eye had looked
down, and the difference was that between a life in the full glory of
light and sorry groping in darkness.

The news always reaching him of the growth of the miracle was now the
motive power of a great belief, yet to one able to trace it from the
germ it hardly seemed credible or at the best too good to be true. From
many sources there came tidings of the new force at work in the world.
The play was making history; wherever it appeared, reverberations
followed. From one end of North America to the other, it had gone like
fire. Irenic in tone and intention it might be, but also within it was
that which raised it above party and above creed.

The people who saw and heard “A Play Without a Name” were able to
fulfill Urban Meyer’s prediction. A great world religion had found a
miraculous birth in the theater. By the wave of an enchanter’s wand,
the stage had become an inspired teacher who received the sanction of
the few, and met the need of the many. The message it had to deliver
was simple as truth itself, yet the divine charm of its setting forth
haunted even the smallest soul with a magic glimpse of the Kingdom of
the Something Else. The play’s appeal was so remarkable that many who
saw it simply lived for the time when they could see it again. It was
a draught from the waters of Helicon; and, for them who drank of the
Pierian spring, arose enchanted vistas of what the world might be if
love and fellowship, works and faith, were allowed to remake it.

Urban Meyer had said that the world might be born again through the
power of a great play. And in the first months of its production the
signs were many that he was a true prophet. Through the wedding of
insight with beauty, sympathy with truth, it reconciled factions,
harmonized creeds.

Those who asked too much of life rejoiced as greatly in its sovereign
humanity as those who asked too little. A divine simplicity spoke to
all sorts of men. The pillar of the Church and the despiser of all
religions, the over-good and the average person received from the well
of a pure and infinite love, a new evidence, a new portent of the risen
Christ.

It was said of those who saw it, that they were never quite the same
afterward. An enchantment was laid upon the heart of man. Feeling,
humor, imaginative truth, formed the basis of its triumph. A desire to
do good was evoked, not because it was a sound spiritual investment or
because others might be induced to do good to oneself, but it made of
well-doing a natural act, like the eating of food or the drawing of
breath.

Among the evidences of the new magic now at work in the world was a
remarkable letter which Brandon received at the beginning of February.
It said:

                                   _Independence Theater,
                                        New York,
                                             January 24._

  DEAR MR. BRANDON:

  I cannot tell you what an effect the play is making here. You will
  remember that, when I read it, I set my heart on the greatest
  production ever seen. And it was because the spirit of the play made
  me _feel_ that I owed it to a world which had suffered me sixty-eight
  years, in which I had prospered exceedingly, and from which I have on
  the whole derived much happiness. Well, after many unforeseen trials,
  difficulties and disappointments, this aim has been achieved. Having
  at last brought together the cast I wanted, with great players in the
  chief parts, and having made sure of a noble interpretation, I opened
  the doors of this theater, for the first time in its history, at a
  democratic price, so that the downtown seamstress could have a glimpse
  of the Something Else, as well as her sister on Fifth Avenue.

  That was not the act of a man of business, although it has proved a
  business action. I am not out to make money by this play. I don’t want
  to make money out of it, because I feel, and this will make you smile,
  that it’s like trafficking in the Word of God. But under the terms of
  the contract entered into between us on behalf of the unknown author,
  who I am sorry to learn from Mr. Pomfret is seriously ill, large sums
  are going to be earned by it in all parts of the world. In the course
  of the next few months it will be played here and in Canada, by at
  least fifty stock companies. Next month I start for Stockholm, in
  order to produce it at the state theater. Christiansen, the poet, has
  prepared a version which I believe to have true inspiration. As you
  know, his reputation has European significance, and several of his
  German friends, among them the Director of the National Theater, will
  be present at the first performance. The fame of the play has already
  reached Europe, and Christiansen hopes for an early performance in
  Berlin. Arrangements are also being made in Paris, Rome, Petrograd,
  and Vienna, and in the course of a few months I expect versions of
  it to appear in all these places. Van Roon’s beautiful version for
  the Hague, Hjalmar’s for Christiania and Ximena’s for Madrid, will be
  produced within a few weeks, so you see that the grass is not growing
  under our feet.

  There is every reason to look for great developments. It is hoped that
  the play may be a means of keeping open the door for civilization.

                                   Believe me, dear Mr. Brandon,
                                        Very sincerely yours,
                                             URBAN MEYER.

  P.S. I have just heard that the play has been awarded the Nobel Prize
  for peace. Christiansen writes that he has been asked to go to England
  and offer an address to the author on behalf of the Scandinavian
  Government.

                                             U. M.




XLIII


THE blinds were down at the vicarage. Prince, whose stealthy grace of
movement was that of the perfect parlor maid, walked with more than
usual delicacy. Her master had not slept in his bed for two nights.
Miss Edith was working in a Paris hospital, and news had come from
France that Mr. Tom was gone.

In the absence of Miss Edith, Prince felt herself to be the most
authoritative female in that diminished household; and she was much
concerned for her master, whom she adored. It was the nature of Prince
to adore. In her face was the look of stern beauty worn by nearly every
Englishwoman of her generation. It seemed but yesterday that she had
ordered a wedding dress she was never to wear, because “her boy,” a
lusty towheaded young sergeant of the Sussex Regiment, had gone to
sleep on the Somme.

Ever since the telegram had come from the War Office, the vicar had not
been himself. But his first act had been to go up to town for the day,
and comfort and advise the brave girl whose three bairns would never
see their father again. It had called for a great effort, for he was
stunned by the sense of loss. To a father, the first-born is a symbol.
And there is nothing to replace an eldest son in the heart of a lonely
man who lives in the memory of a great happiness. He had only to look
at gifted, rare-spirited Tom to see the mother, to watch the play of
her features, to behold the light of her eyes.

Of his four children he had never disguised the fact that Tom was the
fine flower. Like many men of rather abrupt mental limitation, the
vicar had, at bottom, a reverence for a good brain. This boy had been
given a talent, and many a time had the father amused himself with the
pious fancy that the brilliant barrister, of whom much was predicted,
would be the second Lord Chancellor of his name and blood.

On the third morning of the news, as the vicar sat at breakfast
solitary and without appetite, Prince brought him a letter. It bore a
service postmark. It was from Somewhere in France, and it said:

                                        _1st Metropolitan Regiment._

  DEAR SIR:

  It is with the deepest regret that I have to inform you that Captain
  Perry-Hennington was killed on the 5th inst. His loss falls very
  heavily indeed upon his brother officers and the men of his Regiment.
  I will not attempt to say how much he meant to all ranks, for no
  man could have been more looked up to, or more generally beloved.
  All knew him for what he was, a good soldier, a true Christian, a
  great gentleman. He was in the act of writing you a letter (which I
  inclose) when word was brought to him that a man of another battalion,
  mortally hit, had asked for Captain Perry-Hennington. He went out at
  once, across the danger zone to a communication trench, where the
  poor fellow lay, but half way he was caught by a shell and killed
  instantly. If it was his turn, it was the end he would have asked for,
  and the end those who loved him would have asked for him. Assuring you
  of the Regiment’s deepest sympathy in your great loss,

                                   I am, very sincerely yours,
                                        G. H. ARBUTHNOT,
                                             Lieutenant Colonel.

Inclosed in the letter was a scrap of paper on which was written:

  DEAREST DAD:

  “I fear the will is going. For nearly three years it has been my
  continual prayer to Our Father in Heaven that the mind be not taken
  before the soul is released, but if----”

As soon as the vicar had read these strange words he rose unsteadily
from the table, went into the study and locked the door. Then kneeling
under a favorite portrait of the boy’s mother, he offered a humble
prayer of thanks. A little afterward, unable to bear the restraint of
four walls, he went out, hatless, into the sunlight of a very perfect
day. Very slowly, yet hardly knowing what he did, he passed through the
vicarage gate, and turned into the steep and narrow path leading to the
village green. Half way up some familiar lines of Milton began to ring
oddly in his ears:

  Methought I saw my late espousèd saint
  Brought to me like Alcestis from the grave.

And they were accompanied by an odd phrase he had once heard on the
lips of Gervase Brandon. In the height of a forgotten controversy,
Brandon had said that “for him the image of the spectrum had altered.”
As the phrase now came to the vicar he caught a glimpse of its meaning.
Somehow he perceived a change of mental vision. At that moment he
seemed to walk closer with God than he had ever walked; at that moment
he was in more intimate communion with an adored wife, a beloved son.
Even the sweet upland air and the flow of the sun through the leaves
had a new quality. The feeling of personal loss was yielding to praise
and thanksgiving; never had the vicar been so sure of that loving mercy
upon which his boy had implicitly relied.

Filled with a new, a greater life, he found himself, without knowing
it, on the village green. And then in a flash, as he came to the
priest’s stone, the angle of the spectrum shifted again. He was pierced
by the recognition of a great presence. A voice, faint, far off, yet
clear as the sound of flowing water, touched his ear with such ecstasy
that he looked around to see whence it came. A sky gloriously burnished
with the presence of God alone could have winged it; and as he looked
up, came the words: “And, lo, the heavens opened unto him, and he saw
the Spirit of God descending like a dove and lighting upon him.”

Thrilled by a joy which was half fear, the vicar leaned against the
stone. And as he did so a rush of wild thoughts swept his mind like a
tide. His eyes grew dark as he saw again a summer twilight and a frail
figure of fantasy kneeling upon the spot to which he was now rooted.
In a series of pictures, a terrible and strange scene was reënacted.
A motor car glided stealthily past the door of the widow’s cottage;
it came round the bend of the road; as it stopped by the edge of the
green, two heavy somber men descended from it, and from his own base
ambush, but a few yards off, he saw them cautiously approach the
kneeling figure.

Again he was the witness of the acts and the words that passed. He saw
the figure rise as they came up; he heard the greeting of the calm,
expecting voice: “Father, forgive them; for they know not what they
do.” Again he saw the grim procession move across the grass, he saw the
upward gesture to the God in the sky, which at the moment had revolted
him; and then he saw the car stealthily turn the bend in the track and
fade among the dark-glowing gorse.

A nausea came upon the vicar. Sick with sudden terror, he realized
what he had done. To the fate which his own boy could not face and had
been allowed, as a crowning mercy, to escape, he had himself condemned
a fellow creature without a hearing, and perhaps against the weight
of evidence. By what authority had he immured a fellow citizen in a
living tomb? By what authority had he denied the first and highest of
all sanctions to a human soul? The doom that his own poor lad, with all
his heroism, had not the superhuman courage to meet, this defenseless
villager had embraced in the spirit of a martyr and a saint.

“Father, forgive them; for they know not what they do.”

Again the vicar saw him rise from his knees, and with a wan but happy
smile go forth to a fate by comparison with which the grave was very
kind. Overborne by a sudden passion of illogical remorse, the vicar
sank to his own knees by the stone, on a spot bare of grass, the
fruit, perhaps, of John Smith’s many kneelings in many bygone years.
Broken and bereaved, a lone animal wounded and terrified, he humbly
asked that he might be allowed to meet his wife and his boy in Heaven.

The vicar rose from his knees. Faint and chill of heart, he hardly
cared to look up for a visible answer to his prayer. He was now in
outer darkness. For Thomas Perry-Hennington there was no descent of
the Spirit from the hard sky, glowing with strange beauty. He listened
wildly, yet he could only hear the water flowing by Burkett’s mill.

“Father, forgive them; for they know not what they do.”

The living words were spurring him to frenzy. But the soul of man,
naked and shuddering, helpless and lonely, recoiled upon itself with
the fear that there was none of whom to seek forgiveness. For one,
Thomas Perry-Hennington, there was no means of access to the Father. By
an idolatrous act, setting the state above the Highest, he had severed
all communication. In bigotry, arrogance, imperfect faith he had
betrayed the Master; in pharisaic blindness he had crucified the Son of
Man.

Thoughts like these, coming at this moment, were too much for human
endurance; in that direction madness lay. A little while he stood by
the stone, trying to hold on to the thing he called “himself.” And then
a strange desire came upon him to crave the light of one whom he had
traduced. He dare not set his act higher, he dare not state his treason
in other terms; at that moment the will itself forbade his so doing. An
issue was now upon him which reason could not accept. To the inner eye
within the mind itself all was darkness, but looking now with the ear
alone he thought he heard a far, faint voice in the infinite stellar
spaces, a voice telling him to go at once to Wellwood.

Suddenly he turned and trailed off back to the vicarage, like some
hapless, hunted thing of the fields, that flees too madly for hope of
escape. As he half ran down the steep path, his white face gleaming in
the sun, he began to repeat mechanically, in order still to keep in
touch with the central forces:

  Methought I saw my late espousèd saint
  Brought to me like Alcestis from the grave.

By the time he had reached the middle of the lane, it came to him that
he was obeying his wife’s voice.

Turning in at the vicarage gate he called across the privet to the
ancient Hobson to leave his roots, and go and put the harness on old
Alice.




XLIV


VIA Grayfield, Easing and Chettleford the distance to Wellwood was
nearly twenty miles. He might train from Brombridge, but the service
was bad and there would be three miles to walk at the end. So he
decided that old Alice should take him to Grayfield, and then he would
ask Whymper to lend him his car.

But long before he came to Grayfield he felt that this could not be.
At that moment his old Magdalen friend was the last person in the
universe he desired to meet. If he had now to face his kind it must be
some other. Thus, as the stately chimneys and fine gables of the Manor
house, rising proudly behind an enchanted copse of fern and Canterbury
bells, came into view, he urged old Alice past them at her best pace
and on to the Chequers, Grayfield’s model public house. Its landlord,
Hickman, a civil, obliging fellow, was known to the vicar, who in this
dilemma was very glad of his help. It was not fair to ask the full
journey of poor old Alice.

He was able to exchange her temporarily for the landlord’s young mare.
But in the process he had to submit to an ordeal that he would have
given much to be spared.

“I see, sir, in the _Advertiser_,” said Hickman, as he gave the ostler
a hand in the inn yard, “that the Captain’s gone. My boy went the same
day. He was not in the Captain’s lot, but I happen to know that he
thought there was no one like him. He was such a gentleman, and he had
a way with him that had a rare power over young chaps.”

The vicar could not answer the honest fellow, whose voice failed
suddenly and whose eyes were full of tears. But he held out his hand
very simply, and Hickman, his tears now falling softly, like those of a
child, took it.

“Excuse me, sir. Bill was my all. You see, I buried the wife in the
spring. Things are at a dead end for me now.”

The vicar, unable to speak, offered his hand again.

All at once Hickman took him firmly by the coat-sleeve and led him
a dozen paces away from the ostler. “Excuse the great freedom,
sir”--the big, not over-bright fellow’s whisper was excessive in its
humility--“but, as a minister of the Gospel, there’s one question I’d
like to ask you.”

Mr. Perry-Hennington shuddered at the perception of what was coming.

“The only hope for a chap like me is that I’ll meet the wife and the
boy in Heaven. Otherwise, I’m at a dead end as you might say. As one
man to another, what chance do you think there is?”

The vicar grew cold at the heart.

“Of course, I’m not a churchgoer; I am not a religious man or anything
of that kind. My father wasn’t. I’ve always tried to go straight, keep
sober, pay my way and so on, but of course, I’ve never taken Communion
or read the Bible or done anything to curry favor. That’s not my
nature. Still, I reckon myself a fairish, decentish chap; and on Sunday
evening, after the service, I went round to talk to our vicar here, Mr.
Pierce.”

“Yes.” Mr. Perry-Hennington gave an eager gasp. “That was very wise.
What did he say to you?” His lips could hardly shape the question.

“Why, sir, he said that a Christian couldn’t doubt for a moment that
one day he would be with his wife and children in Heaven.”

“Mr. Pierce said that!”

“He did. And I told him I didn’t pretend to be a Christian and I asked
him if he thought I had left it too late.”

“Yes?”

“Well, sir, he said it was never too late to be a Christian. And he
gave me a prayer book--he’s a very nice gentleman--and told me to take
it home and read it.”

“Yes?”

“I’ve tried to read it, sir, but to be quite honest, I don’t feel that
I shall ever be much of a Christian.”

“Well, Hickman--” suddenly Mr. Perry-Hennington found his
voice--“always try to remember this: Jesus Christ came to us here
in order that you might be with your dear wife and your dear boy in
Heaven, and--and--we have His pledged Word--and we must believe in
that.”

“But how is a chap to believe what he can’t prove?”

“We must have faith--we must all have faith.”

“All very well, sir,” said Hickman dourly, “but suppose He has promised
more than He can perform?”

“In what way? How do you mean?”

“According to the Bible He was to come again, but as far as I can make
out there doesn’t seem much sign of Him yet.”

Mr. Perry-Hennington was silent a moment and then he took one of the
landlord’s large hands in both of his own and said in an abrupt,
half grotesque, wholly illogical way, “My dear friend, we are all
members one of another. It is our duty to hope for the best--our duty
to believe that the best will happen.” And as he turned aside, he
added with another curious change of voice, which he could not have
recognized as belonging to himself, “You see, we are all in the same
boat.”

Saying these words, the vicar climbed into his trap with almost the
stagger of a drunken man. He hardly knew what he said or what he did,
but as soon as the mare was out of the inn yard it came upon him that
he had to go to Wellwood, and that the way to get there was through
Easing and Chettleford.

Why at that particular moment that particular place should be his
destination he didn’t quite know, unless it was in obedience to a voice
he had heard in the sky. A modern man, whose supreme desire was to
take reason for his guide in all things, even if the vows of his faith
forced him to accept the supernatural in form and sum, he feared in
this hour to apply it too rigidly.

As the publican’s mare went steadily forward along the winding, humid
lanes of a woodland country, a feeling of hopelessness came upon him.
What did he expect to do when he got to the end of his journey? Such a
question simply admitted of no answer. It was not to be faced by Thomas
Perry-Hennington on his present plane of being. The logic of the
matter could not be met.

That was the case, no doubt, but a compromise was equally impossible.
Something would have to happen. Either he must go forward or he must go
back. A soul in strange, terrible torment passed unseen and unseeing
through the tiny hamlet of Easing and on and on up a steep hill and
then down through a long valley of trees and a gloom of massively
beautiful furze country. There was not a ripple of wind in the tense
air, and in the early afternoon it grew very dark, with an occasional
growl of thunder over the far hills. On the outskirts of Chettleford it
began to rain in large slow drops; and as his sweating face perceived
the soft, cool splash he half dared to take it as the explicit kindness
of Heaven. Upon the wings of that thought came the automatic intrusion
into his mind of the words:

  Methought I saw my late espousèd saint
  Brought to me like Alcestis from the grave.

And with them came the strange fancy that these tears out of Heaven
were those of his wife and his boy.

A mile beyond Chettleford, at the dark edge of a wood, the sudden fear
struck him that the soul of Thomas Perry-Hennington was about to enter
unending night. A recollection dread and spectral, which might have
been Dante or the far distant ages of the past, engulfed him swiftly
and completely. It was impossible to turn back now or he would have
done so.

The narrow road grew darker and darker as it wound under the heavy,
rain-pattered canopy of the wood. Earth and sky were without form, and
void. He lost touch with time and place; he began to lose touch with
his own identity. He only knew that Thomas Perry-Hennington was his
name and that his destination was Wellwood Asylum.

The rain grew heavier, but there was no comfort in it now. He was
already far beyond any kind of physical aid. A grisly demon was in him,
urging him onward to his doom. His soul’s reaction to it was beyond
pity and terror. Quite suddenly, and long before he expected to see
them, the heavy iron gates of the asylum were before him. At the sound
of wheels an old man, very bent and grim, whom in the wet half-light he
almost took for Charon, came slowly out of his lodge and fitted a key
to the lock.




XLV


THE vicar and his trap passed through the gates of Wellwood and along
a short drive, flanked by wet bushes of rhododendron to the main
entrance. In a voice not at all like his own he said to a heavy, rather
brutal-looking man who opened one of the doors, “Mr. Perry-Hennington
to see Dr. Thorp.”

He was admitted at once to a dim, somber interior, and shown into a
small, stuffy waiting room in which he could hardly breathe. It was
perhaps a relief to find himself quite alone, but in a very short time
the doctor came to him.

The two men were known to each other. It was not Mr. Perry-Hennington’s
first visit to Wellwood; and from time to time they had sat together on
various committees affecting the social welfare of the county.

The vicar’s state of mind did not allow him to give much attention to
Dr. Thorp, otherwise he could hardly have failed to notice that the
chief medical officer of the establishment was in a state of suppressed
excitement.

“I am particularly glad to see you, Mr. Perry-Hennington,” he said.
“I am afraid we are about to lose one of our patients under remarkable
and tragic circumstances. He has not asked for the sacrament to be
administered, but now you are so providentially here, I have no doubt
he will welcome it if he is still able to receive it.”

Dr. Thorp paused, but the vicar did not speak.

“It is our poor dear friend, John Smith. For months he has been slowly
dying. But the end is now at hand. And it comes in very singular
circumstances.”

Again Dr. Thorp paused, again the vicar did not speak.

“I will tell you what they are. Our dear friend, in the course of his
stay among us, wrote a stage play. It was given by him to Mr. Brandon,
who gave it to Mr. Urban Meyer, the great American impresario, who has
caused it to be played all over the world. And its success has been so
extraordinary that it has been awarded the Nobel Prize for peace. But
perhaps you know all this?”

The vicar shook his head.

“The whole story seems incredible,” the doctor went on. “But there
it is. Further, I am informed that Dr. Kurt Christiansen, the great
Scandinavian poet and thinker is coming here this afternoon to present
an address on behalf of his Government. And he is to be accompanied
by Mr. Sigismund Prosser, C.B., representing the Royal Academy of
Literature, by Mr. Brandon, representing our own Government, and by a
representative of the press.

“Of course, Mr. Perry-Hennington, I needn’t say that not only are the
circumstances very unusual, they are also extremely difficult and
embarrassing. The first intimation of this arrangement was from the
Home Office, saying that out of regard for the activities of a neutral
Power, our Government lent its sanction; and that if the patient was
able to receive this act of homage it was felt to be in the public
interest that he should do so. But at the same time it was pointed
out that it would be a further public advantage if the distinguished
visitor was not enlightened as to the nature of this establishment, or
the circumstances in which the play had been written. Well, I mentioned
the matter at once to our poor friend, and I was able to reply that,
although the patient was extremely weak and his death perhaps a
question of a few days, he would gladly receive the deputation.

“On the strength of that assurance the arrangements have gone forward.
The deputation is due at Wellwood in rather less than half an hour,
but I grieve to say that our poor dear, but evidently greatly
gifted, friend, whose loss we shall all mourn deeply, is now losing
consciousness.”

“Losing consciousness.” The vicar repeated the words as if he hardly
understood them.

“Yes.” The doctor spoke in a matter-of-fact tone. “It may or may not
be a final phase. There may be a slight rally which will enable him to
receive the honor about to be paid him. On the other hand it is almost
too much to hope for now. Every kind of stimulant has been already
administered, but the action of the heart is very feeble and I am sadly
afraid that the deputation is making its journey in vain.”

“Am I too late?” gasped the vicar.

“Not to do your office, I hope. The patient may still be able to
receive the sacrament.”

“May I see him?”

“I shall be very glad for you to do so.”

“Let me go to him at once,” gasped the vicar wildly.




XLVI


HIS eyes growing dark, the vicar asked for a prayer book. When this had
been procured, the doctor led him through a maze of dismal corridors to
a small door at the extreme end of a long passage.

At the doctor’s gentle tap it was opened by the head attendant.

“Any change, Boswell?” whispered the doctor.

There was no change it appeared.

At first the vicar stood irresolute on the threshold of the cell. His
manner made it clear that he desired to be alone with the dying man,
and in a few moments the doctor and the attendant went away. The vicar,
grasping his prayer book like a staff, then passed in alone, and the
heavy door swung to behind him with a self-closing click which locked
it securely.

The room had only a bedstead. It was very hard to see in that night of
time through which the vicar was now looking. Not daring to approach
the bed, he stood hopelessly by the door, naked in spirit, faint of
soul. He could neither speak nor move. There was not a sound in the
room, nor any light. He stood alone.

He stood alone and without any kind of power; he could neither hear
nor see; he was in a void in which time was awfully revealed in a new
notation. Broken with fear, he began slowly to lose apperception.

How long he remained solitary there was no means of knowing, but at
last he heard a voice in the room. It was hardly more than a sigh, yet
so strangely familiar and expected was the sound that the vicar knew it
at once for the voice of One.

“You did as your light directed. Faithful servant, kiss me.”

Transfigured with a wild emotion, like music and wine in his heart, the
vicar moved to the bed. He fell on his knees, and flung his arms round
the form which lay there. He pressed wild kisses upon the luminous
face. At the contact of his lips, the image of the spectrum altered
and Truth itself was translated to a higher value. Then he seemed to
realize that he was holding in his arms a heroic son----.

“My darling boy!” he whispered. “My darling boy!”

Again he rained kisses on the upturned face.

He suddenly perceived that a third presence was by his side. He knew it
for the happy mother and beloved wife. Again the image of the spectrum
altered. He was born again. There came to him with new, intenser
meaning the doctrine of the Trinity and through it the mystic union of
husband, wife and child in the Father’s Love.

After a further lapse of time which was measureless, the ecstasy of the
human father was terminated by the sound of a key turning in the door
of the room. Instantly the spell was broken and he realized that he was
fondling the face of a corpse.

The vicar rose from his knees as the doctor entered the room. He stood
by the bed, shivering now with strange happiness, while the doctor
lifted the hand and looked at the face of his patient.

“I was afraid,” said the doctor in a hushed voice, “that he would not
be able to receive the deputation. Dear fellow! He is now with the
souls in whom he believed.”

“And who believed in Him,” said the vicar in a tone that the doctor
could hardly recognize.

“Yes, there were souls who believed in him,” said the doctor in a
matter-of-fact voice which had a kind of gentle indulgence. “There must
have been. More than one of our poor old men here died with his name on
their lips. You would hardly believe what an influence he had among us.
We shall miss him very much. In his way he was a true saint, a real
teacher, and he has left this place better than he found it.”

“If only he could have received the homage that awaited him,” the vicar
whispered.

“Yes, if only he could have done so! But it is written otherwise.
Still, we all feel that a very remarkable honor has been paid to one
of our inmates. By the way, isn’t it Aristotle--or is it Plato?--who
says that it is a part of probability that many improbabilities will
happen?”




XLVII


AS the vicar and the doctor left John Smith’s cell, there came out of
the deep shadows of the long corridor a figure, old, forlorn, very
infirm. With a haunted look this rather grotesque creature shuffled
forward, and fixing tragic eyes upon the doctor’s face muttered in an
alien tongue:

“He is risen. He is risen.”

The doctor reproved him sharply. “Why, Goethe, what in fortune’s name
are you doing here! Go at once to your own side and don’t let me
see you here again. Strict instructions were given that none of the
patients were to be seen in the west wing just now. I must look into
this. Go at once to your own side.”

The old man slunk away, still muttering softly, “He is risen. He is
risen.”

The doctor was obviously annoyed by the incident. “Gross carelessness
on the part of someone,” he said. “The deputation is already due, and
the Home Office desires us in the special and quite unprecedented
circumstances of the case to present as normal an appearance as we can.
In other words, it doesn’t want representatives of our own and foreign
governments to be welcomed by a parcel of lunatics. That will not help
anybody; besides, as the Home Office says, it is desirable that no slur
should be cast on the profession of literature.”

“And on the memory of the Master,” whispered the vicar in his hushed
voice.

“Quite so. I fully agree. The dear fellow! And to think he was able to
win a prize of seven thousand pounds, not to mention the many thousands
his work is earning all over the world, from which, by the way,
deserving charities are benefiting.”

“Did he know that his work was producing these large sums?”

“Oh, yes. And I think the knowledge gave him pleasure. But he never
regarded a penny as his own. He left it to Mr. Brandon and myself--two
just men I am proud to think he called us--to give back again, as he
said, ‘that which had been given to him, in the way likely to do the
most good.’”

“He was quite selfless,” said the vicar.

“Absolutely. And he is the only man I have known, or am ever likely to
know, of whom that statement could be truly made. I have known good
men, I have known men with high, forward-looking souls, but I have
never known a man so near His model that if it had not existed already
one almost felt that such a man must have created it. In fact, John
Smith will stand out in my experience as the most remarkable case I
have known. He believed until he became.”

“As you say, he believed until he became. And he made a prophecy which
he has lived to fulfill.”

“What was the prophecy he made?”

“That he would heal the wounds of the world.”

“I wonder, I wonder.”

“Oh ye of little faith!” whispered the vicar. The tears that rose to
his eyes were like the blood of his heart.

Hardly had Mr. Perry-Hennington spoken the words when both he and
Doctor Thorp perceived a stir at the doors of the main entrance to the
institution, now in view at the far end of the corridor along which
they were passing. No more than a glance was needed to tell them that
the deputation was in the act of arrival. Beyond the open doors, a
large motor car and an imposing array of silk hats were clearly visible
in the half-light of the wet afternoon.

As the doctor and the vicar came to the main entrance, several persons
entered the building. Foremost of these were Gervase Brandon and a very
noble-looking old man with snow-white hair and the eyes of a child. In
one hand he carried his hat, in the other a large bunch of lilies held
together with a broad ribbon of white satin.

“Dr. Thorp,” said Brandon, with a happy and proud smile. “I have
the great honor and privilege to present Dr. Kurt Christiansen,
whose reputation has long preceded him. At the instance of a neutral
government he has come to this country to pay in the name of humanity
the world’s homage to our dear friend.”

Solemn but cordial bows were exchanged and then Dr. Thorp replied,
“I grieve to have to tell you, sir, that our dear friend has already
passed.”

The childlike bearer of the lilies looked very simply into the doctor’s
eyes. “Dead,” he said.

“But being dead liveth,” said a tall clergyman from the background in a
whispered tone of new authority.

There followed a moment of silence and constraint. And then it was very
unexpectedly shattered by a wild appearance, grinning with strange joy
and crying in an alien tongue, “He is risen! He is risen!”

Only the prompt intervention of Dr. Thorp prevented this figure of
fantasy flinging its arms round the neck of Mr. Sigismund Prosser, C.B.
An international incident of some magnitude was thus averted, for the
representative of the Royal Academy of Literature had recently said at
a public meeting that “he had done with Goethe forever.”




EPILOGUE

                                        _Whitehall,
                                             Friday._

  _Strictly confidential._

  DEAR BRANDON:

  Your moving account of the proceedings at Wellwood Sanatorium was read
  at the Cabinet meeting this afternoon and you will be glad to know
  that the Lord Chamberlain is being advised to license the production
  of the Play in this country. In the present state of the public mind
  it is felt to be the best course to take. It is hoped that further
  questions will not arise in the House, otherwise it may be impossible
  to avoid an inquiry into all the circumstances of a most singular
  case, and this, I think you will agree, would be undesirable just now
  from every point of view.

                                        Yours,
                                             GEORGE SPEKE.




TRANSCRIBER’S NOTES:

On page 33, threshhold has been changed to threshold.

On page 35, bedridden has been changed to bed-ridden.

On page 45, Grevase has been changed to Gervase.

On page 63, ferrago has been changed to farrago.

On page 125, wartime has been changed to war time.

On page 130, nonplused has been changed to nonplussed.

On page 269, prevaded has been changed to pervaded.

On page 287, musn’t has been changed to mustn’t.

All other spelling, hyphenation and variants have been retained as
typeset.